Central Government Act
The Code Of Criminal Procedure, 1973
CrPC Section 1. Short title extent and commencement.
(1) This Act may be called the Code of Criminal Procedure, 1973 .
(2) It extends to the whole of India except the State of Jammu and
Kashmir: Provided that the provisions of this Code, other than those
relating to Chapters VIII, X and XI thereof, shall not apply-
(a) to the State of Nagaland,
(b) to the tribal areas, but the concerned State Government may, by
notification, apply such provisions or any of them to the whole or
part of the State of Nagaland or such tribal areas, as the case may
be, with such supplemental, incidental or consequential
modifications, as may be specified in the notification.
Explanation.- In this section,” tribal areas” means the territories
which immediately before the 21st day of January, 1972 , were
included in the tribal areas of Assam, as referred to in paragraph
20 of the Sixth Schedule to the Constitution, other than those
within the local limits of the municipality of Shillong.
(3) It shall come into force on the 1st day of April, 1974 .
CrPC Section 2. Definitions. In this Code, unless the context otherwise
requires,-
(a) “bailable offence” means an offence which is shown as bailable in
the First Schedule, or which is made bailable by any other law for the
time being in force; and” non- bailable offence” means any other
offence;
(b) “charge” includes any head of charge when the charge contains more
heads than one;
(c) “cognizable offence” means an offence for which, and” cognizable
case” means a case in which, a police officer may, in
accordance with the First Schedule or under any other law for the time
being in force, arrest without warrant;
(d) “complaint” means any allegation made orally or in writing to a
Magistrate, with a view to his taking action under this Code, that
some person, whether known or unknown, has committed an offence, but
does not include a police report. Explanation.- A report made by a
police officer in a case which discloses, after investigation, the
commission of a non- cognizable offence shall be deemed to be a
complaint; and the police officer by whom such report is made shall be
deemed to be the complainant;
(e) “High Court” means,-
(i) in relation to any State, the High Court for that State;
(ii) in relation to a Union territory to which the juris- diction of
the High Court for a State has been extended by law, that High
Court;
(iii) in relation to any other Union territory, the highest Court of
criminal appeal for that territory other than the Supreme Court of
India;
(f) “India” means the territories to which this Code extends;
(g) “inquiry” means every inquiry, other than a trial, conducted under
this Code by a Magistrate or Court;
(h) “investigation” includes all the proceedings under this Code for
the collection of evidence conducted by a police officer or by any
person (other than a Magistrate) who is authorised by a Magistrate in
this behalf;
(i) “judicial proceeding” includes any proceeding in the course of
which evidence is or may be legally taken on oath;
(j) “local jurisdiction”, in relation to a Court or Magistrate, means
the local area within which the Court or Magistrate may exercise all
or any of its or his powers under this Code 1 and such
local area may comprise the whole of the State, or any part of the
State, as the State Government may, by notification, specify];
999999. 1 Ins. by Act 45 of 1978, s. 2 (w. e, f, 18- 12- 1978 ).
(k) “metropolitan area” means the area declared, or deemed to be
declared, under section 8, to be a metropolitan area;
(l) “non- cognizable offence” means an offence for which, and” non-
cognizable case” means a case in which, a police officer has no
authority to arrest without warrant;
(m) “notification” means a notification published in the Official
Gazette;
(n) “offence” means any act or omission made punishable by any law for
the time being in force and includes any act in respect of which a
complaint may be made under section 20 of the Cattle- trespass Act,
1871 (1 of 1871 );
(o) “officer in charge of a police station” includes, when the officer
in charge of the police station is absent from the station house or
unable from illness or other cause to perform his duties, the police
officer present at the station- house who is next in rank to such
officer and is above the rank of constable or, when the State
Government so directs, any other police officer so present;
(p) “place” includes a house, building, tent, vehicle and vessel;
(q) “pleader”, when used with reference to any proceeding in any
Court, means a person authorised by or under any law for the time
being in force, to practise in such Court, and includes any other
person appointed with the permission of the Court to act in such
proceeding;
(r) “police report” means a report forwarded by a police officer to
Magistrate under sub- section (2) of section 173;
(s) “police station” means any post or place declared generally or
specially by the State Government, to be a police station, and
includes any local area specified by the State Government in this
behalf;
(t) “prescribed” means prescribed by rules made under this Code;
(u) “Public Prosecutor” means any person appointed under section 24,
and includes any person acting under the directions of a Public
Prosecutor;
(v) “sub- division” means a sub- division of a district;
(w) “summons- case” means a case relating to an offence, and not being
a warrant- case;
(x) “warrant- case” means a case relating to an offence punishable
with death, imprisonment for life or imprisonment for a term exceeding
two years;
(y) words and expressions used herein and not defined but defined in
the Indian Penal Code (45 of 1860 ) have the meanings respectively
assigned to them in that Code.
CrPC Section 3. Construction of references.
(1) In this Code,-
(a) any reference, without any qualifying words, to a Magistrate,
shall be construed, unless the context otherwise requires,-
(i) in relation to an area outside a metropolitan area, as a
reference to a Judicial Magistrate;
(ii) in relation to a metropolitan area, as a reference to a
Metropolitan Magistrate;
(b) any reference to a Magistrate of the second class shall, in
relation to an area outside a metropolitan area, be construed as a
reference to a Judicial Magistrate of the second class, and, in
relation to a metropolitan area, as a reference to a Metropolitan
Magistrate;
(c) any reference to a Magistrate of the first class shall,-
(i) in relation to a metropolitan area, be construed as a
reference to a Metropolitan Magistrate exercising jurisdiction in
that area,
(ii) in relation to any other area, be construed as a reference to
a Judicial Magistrate of the first class exercising jurisdiction
in that area;
(d) any reference to the Chief Judicial Magistrate shall, in
relation to a metropolitan area, be construed as a reference to the
Chief Metropolitan Magistrate exercising jurisdiction in that area.
(2) In this Code, unless the context otherwise requires, any reference
to the Court of a Judicial Magistrate shall, in relation to a
metropolitan area, be construed as a reference to the Court of the
Metropolitan Magistrate for that area.
(3) Unless the context otherwise requires, any reference in any
enactment passed before the commencement of this Code,-
(a) to a Magistrate of the first class, shall be construed as a
reference to a Judicial Magistrate of the first class;
(b) to a Magistrate of the second class or of the third class, shall
be construed as a reference to a Judicial Magistrate of the second
class;
(c) to a Presidency Magistrate or Chief Presidency Magistrate, shall
be construed as a reference, respectively, to a Metropolitan
Magistrate or the Chief Metropolitan Magistrate;
(d) to any area which is included in a metropolitan area, as a
reference to such metropolitan area, and any reference to a
Magistrate of the first class or of the second class in relation to
such area, shall be construed as a reference to the Metropolitan
Magistrate exercising jurisdiction in such area.
(4) Where, under any law, other than this Code, the functions
exercisable by a Magistrate relate to matters-
(a) which involve the appreciation or sifting of evidence or the
formulation of any decision which exposes any person to any
punishment or penalty or detention in custody pending investigation,
inquiry or trial or would have the effect of sending him for trial
before any Court, they shall, subject to the provisions of this
Code, be exercisable by a Judicial Magistrate; or
(b) which are administrative or executive in nature, such as, the
granting of a licence, the suspension or cancellation of a licence,
sanctioning a prosecution or withdrawing from a prosecution, they
shall, subject as aforesaid, be exercisable by an Executive
Magistrate.
CrPC Section 4. Trial of offences under the Indian Penal Code and other laws.
(1) All offences under the Indian Penal Code (45 of 1860 ) shall be
investigated, inquired into, tried, and otherwise dealt with according
to the provisions hereinafter contained.
(2) All offences under any other law shall be investigated, inquired
into, tried, and otherwise dealt with according to the same
provisions, but subject to any enactment for the time being in force
regulating the manner or place of investigating, inquiring into,
trying or otherwise dealing with such offences.
CrPC Section 5. Saving. Nothing contained in this Code shall, in the absence
of a specific provision to the contrary, affect any special or local law
for the time being in force, or any special jurisdiction or power
conferred, or any special form of procedure prescribed, by any other law
for the time being in force.
CHAP CONSTITUTION OF CRIMINAL COURTS AND OFFICES CHAPTER II CONSTITUTION
OF CRIMINAL COURTS AND OFFICES
CrPC Section 6. Classes Criminal Courts. Besides the High Courts and the
Courts constituted under any law, other than this Code, there shall be,
in every State, the following classes of Criminal Courts, namely:-
(i) Courts of Session;
(ii) Judicial Magistrates of the first class and, in any metropolitan
area, Metropolitan Magistrates;
(iii) Judicial Magistrates of the second class; and
(iv) Executive Magistrates.
CrPC Section 7. Territorial divisions.
(1) Every State shall be a sessions division or shall consist of
sessions divisions; and every sessions division shall, for the
purposes of this Code, be a district or consist of districts: Provided
that every metropolitan area shall, for the said purposes, be a
separate sessions division and district.
(2) The State Government may, after consultation with the High Court,
alter the limits or the number of such divisions and districts.
(3) The State Government may, after consultation with the High Court,
divide any district into sub- divisions and may alter the limits or
the number of such sub- divisions.
(4) The sessions divisions, districts and sub- divisions existing in a
State at the commencement of this Code, shall be deemed to have been
formed under this section.
CrPC Section 8. Metropolitan areas.
(1) The State Government may, by notification, declare that, as from
such date as may be specified in the notification, any area in the
State comprising a city or town whose population exceeds one million
shall be a metropolitan area for the purposes of this Code.
(2) As from the commencement of this Code, each of the Presidency
towns of Bombay, Calcutta and Madras and the city of Ahmedabad shall
be deemed to be declared under sub- section (1) to be a metropolitan
area.
(3) The State Government may, by notification, extend, reduce or alter
the limits of a metropolitan area but the reduction or alteration
shall not be so made as to reduce the population of such area to less
than one million.
(4) Where, after an area has been declared, or deemed to have been
declared to be, a metropolitan area, the population of such area falls
below
one million, such area shall, on and from such date as the State
Government may, by notification, specify in this behalf, cease to be a
metropolitan area; but notwithstanding such cesser, any inquiry, trial
or appeal pending immediately before such cesser before any Court or
Magistrate in such area shall continue to be dealt with under this
Code, as if such cesser had not taken place.
(5) Where the State Government reduces or alters, under sub- section
(3), the limits of any metropolitan area, such reduction or alteration
shall not affect any inquiry, trial or appeal pending immediately
before such reduction or alteration before any Court or Magistrate,
and every such inquiry, trial or appeal shall continue to be dealt
with under this Code as if such reduction or alteration had not taken
place. Explanation.- In this section, the expression” population”
means the population as ascertained at the last preceding census of
which the relevant figures have been published.
CrPC Section 9. Court of Session.
(1) The State Government shall establish a Court of Session for every
sessions division.
(2) Every Court of Session shall be presided over by a Judge, to be
appointed by the High Court.
(3) The High Court may also appoint Additional Sessions Judges and
Assistant Sessions Judges to exercise jurisdiction in a Court of
Session.
(4) The Sessions Judge of one sessions division may be appointed by
the High Court to be also an Additional Sessions Judge of another
division and in such case he may sit for the disposal of cases at such
place or places in the other division as the High Court may direct.
(5) Where the office of the Sessions Judge is vacant, the High Court
may make arrangements for the disposal of any urgent application which
is, or may be, made or pending before such Court of Session by an
Additional or Assistant Sessions Judge, or, if there be no Additional
or Assistant Sessions Judge, by a Chief Judicial Magistrate, in the
sessions division; and every such Judge or Magistrate shall have
jurisdiction to deal with any such application.
(6) The Court of Session shall ordinarily hold its sitting at such
place or places as the High Court may, by notification, specify; but,
if, in any particular case, the Court of Session is of opinion that it
will tend to the general convenience of the parties and witnesses to
hold its sittings at any other place in the sessions division, it may,
with the consent of the
prosecution and the accused, sit at that place for the disposal of the
case or the examination of any witness or witnesses therein.
Explanation.- For the purposes of this Code,” appointment” does not
include the first appointment, posting or promotion of a person by the
Government to any Service, or post in connection with the affairs of
the Union or of a State, where under any law, such appointment,
posting or promotion is required to be made by Government.
CrPC Section 10. Subordination of Assistant Sessions Judges.
(1) All Assistant Sessions Judges shall be subordinate to the Sessions
Judge in whose Court they exercise jurisdiction.
(2) The Sessions Judge may, from time to time, make rules consistent
with this Code, as to the distribution of business among such
Assistant Sessions Judges.
(3) The Sessions Judge may also make provision for the disposal of any
urgent application, in the event of his absence or inability to act,
by an Additional or Assistant Sessions Judge, or, if there be no
Additional or Assistant Sessions Judge, by the Chief Judicial
Magistrate, and every such Judge or Magistrate shall be deemed to have
jurisdiction to deal with any such application.
CrPC Section 11. Courts of Judicial Magistrates.
(1) In every district (not being a metropolitan area), there shall be
established as many Courts of Judicial Magistrates of the first class
and of the second class, and at such places, as the State Government
may, after consultation with the High Court, by notification,
specify: 1 Provided that the State Government may, after
consultation with the High Court, establish, for any local area, one
or more Special Courts of Judicial Magistrates of the first class or
of the second class to try any particular case or particular class of
cases, and where any such Special Court is established, no other Court
of Magistrate in the local area shall have jurisdiction to try any
case or class of cases for the trial of which such Special Court of
Judicial Magistrate has been established.]
(2) The presiding officers of such Courts shall be appointed by the
High Court.
(3) The High Court may, whenever it appears to it to be expedient or
necessary, confer the powers of a Judicial Magistrate of the first
class or of the second class on any member of the Judicial Service of
the State, functioning as a Judge in a Civil Court.
1. Ins. by Act 45 of 1978, s. 3 (w. e. f. 18- 12- 1978 ).
CrPC Section 12. Chief Judicial Magistrate and Additional Chief Judicial
Magistrate, etc.
(1) In every district (not being a metropolitan area), the High Court
shall appoint a Judicial Magistrate of the first class to be the Chief
Judicial Magistrate.
(2) The High Court may appoint any Judicial Magistrate of the first
class to be an Additional Chief Judicial Magistrate, and such
Magistrate shall have all or any of the powers of a Chief Judicial
Magistrate under this Code or under any other law for the time being
in force as the High Court may direct.
(3) (a) The High Court may designate any Judicial Magistrate of the
first class in any sub- division as the Sub- divisional Judicial
Magistrate and relieve him of the responsibilities specified in this
section as occasion requires.
(b) Subject to the general control of the Chief Judicial Magistrate,
every Sub- divisional Judicial Magistrate shall also have and
exercise such powers of supervision and control over the work of the
Judicial Magistrates (other than Additional Chief Judicial
Magistrates) in the sub- division as the High Court may, by general
or special order, specify in this behalf.
CrPC Section 13. Special Judicial Magistrates.
(1) The High Court may, if requested by the Central or State
Government so to do, confer upon any person who holds or has held any
post under the Government, all or any of the powers conferred or
conferrable by or under this Code on a Judicial Magistrate
1
of the first class or of the second class, in respect to particular
cases or to particular classes of cases, in any local area, not being
a metropolitan area]: Provided that no such power shall be conferred
on a person unless he possesses such qualification or experience in
relation to legal affairs as the High Court may, by rules, specify.
(2) Such Magistrates shall be called Special Judicial Magistrates and
shall be appointed for such term, not exceeding one year at a time, as
the High Court may, by general or special order, direct. 2
[ (3) The High Court may empower a Special Judicial Magistrate to
exercise the powers of a Metropolitan Magistrate in relation to any
metropolitan area outside his local jurisdiction.]
1. Subs. by Act 45 of 1978, s. 4, for certain words (w. e. f. 18-
12- 1978 ).
2. Ins. by s. 4, ibid. (w. e. f. 18- 12- 1978 ).
CrPC Section 14. Local jurisdiction of Judicial Magistrates.
(1) Subject to the control of the High Court, the Chief Judicial
Magistrate may, from time to time, define the local limits of the
areas within which the Magistrates appointed under section 11 or under
section 13 may exercise all or any of the powers with which they may
respectively be invested under this Code: 1 Provided that
the Court of a Special Judicial Magistrate may hold its sitting at any
place within the local area for which it is established.]
(2) Except as otherwise provided by such definition, the jurisdiction
and powers of every such Magistrate shall extend throughout the
district.
(3) 1 Where the local jurisdiction of a Magistrate,
appointed under section 11 or section 13 or section 18, extends to an
area beyond’ the district, or the metropolitan area, as the case may
be, in which he ordinarily holds Court, any reference in this Code to
the Court of Session, Chief Judicial Magistrate or the Chief
Metropolitan Magistrate shall, in relation to such Magistrate,
throughout the area within his local jurisdiction, be construed,
unless the context otherwise requires, as a reference to the Court of
Session, Chief Judicial Magistrate, or Chief Metropolitan Magistrate,
as the case may be, exercising jurisdiction in relation to the said
district or metropolitan area.]
CrPC Section 15. Subordination of Judicial Magistrates.
(1) Every Chief Judicial Magistrate shall be subordinate to the
Sessions Judge; and every other Judicial Magistrate shall, subject to
the general control of the Sessions Judge, be subordinate to the Chief
Judicial Magistrate.
(2) The Chief Judicial Magistrate may, from time to time, make rules
or give special orders, consistent with this Code, as to the
distribution of business among the Judicial Magistrates subordinate to
him.
CrPC Section 16. Courts of Metropolitan Magistrates.
(1) In every metropolitan area, there shall be established as many
Courts of Metropolitan Magistrates, and at such places, as the State
Government may, after consultation with the High Court, by
notification, specify.
(2) The presiding officers of such Courts shall be appointed by the
High Court.
(3) The jurisdiction and powers of every Metropolitan Magistrate shall
extend throughout the metropolitan area.
1. Ins. by Act 45 of 1978, S. 5 (w. e. f. 18- 12- 1978 ).
CrPC Section 17. Chief Metropolitan Magistrates and Additional Chief
Metropolitan Magistrates.
(1) The High Court shall, in relation to every metropolitan area
within its local jurisdiction, appoint a Metropolitan Magistrate to be
the Chief Metropolitan Magistrate for such metropolitan area.
(2) The High Court may appoint any Metropolitan Magistrate to be an
Additional Chief Metropolitan Magistrate, and such Magistrate shall
have all or any of the powers of a Chief Metropolitan Magistrate under
this Code or under any other law for the time being in force as the
High Court may direct.
CrPC Section 18. Special Metropolitan Magistrates.
(1) The High Court may, if requested by the Central or State
Government so to do, confer upon any person who holds or has held any
post under the Government, all or any of the powers conferred or
conferrable by or under this Code on a Metropolitan Magistrate, in
inspect to particular cases or to particular classes of cases in any
metropolitan area within its local jurisdiction: Provided that no such
power shall be conferred on a person unless lie possesses such
qualification or experience in relation to legal affairs as the High
Court may, by rules, specify.
(2) Such Magistrates shall be called Special Metropolitan Magistrates
and shall be appointed for such term, not exceeding one year at a
time, as the High Court may, by general or special order, direct.
2
[ (3) The High Court or the State Government, as the case may be, may
empower any Special Metropolitan Magistrate to exercise, in any local
area outside the metropolitan area, the powers, of a Judicial
Magistrate of the first class.]
CrPC Section 19. Subordination of Metropolitan Magistrates.
(1) The Chief Metropolitan Magistrate and every Additional Chief
Metropolitan Magistrate shall be subordinate to the Sessions Judge;
and every other Metropolitan Magistrate shall, subject to the general
control of the Sessions Judge, be subordinate to the Chief
Metropolitan Magistrate.
(2) The High Court may, for the purposes of this Code, define the
extent of the subordination, if any, of the Additional Chief
Metropolitan Magistrates to the Chief Metropolitan Magistrate.
(3) The Chief Metropolitan Magistrate may, from time to time, make
rules or give special orders, consistent with this Code, as to the
distribu-
tion of business among the Metropolitan Magistrates and as to the
allocation of business to an Additional Chief Metropolitan Magistrate.
1. Omitted by Act 45 of 1978, s, 6 (w. e. f. 18- 12- 1978 ).
2. Subs. by s. 6, ibid., for sub- section (3) (w. e. f. 18- 12-
1978 ).
CrPC Section 20. Executive Magistrates.
(1) In every district and in every metropolitan area, the State
Government may appoint as many persons as it thinks fit to be
Executive Magistrates and shall appoint one of them to be the District
Magistrate.
(2) The State Government may appoint any Executive Magistrate to be an
Additional District Magistrate, and such Magistrate shall have
1
such] of the powers of a District Magistrate under this Code or under
any other law for the time being in force 2 as may be
directed by the State Government].
(3) Whenever, in consequence of the office of a District Magistrate
becoming vacant, any officer succeeds temporarily to the executive
administration of the district, such officer shall, pending the orders
of he State Government, exercise all the powers and perform all the
duties respectively conferred and imposed by this Code on the District
Magistrate.
(4) The State Government may place an Executive Magistrate in charge
of a sub- division and may relieve him of the charge as occasion
requires; and the Magistrate so placed in charge of a sub- division
shall be called the Sub- divisional Magistrate.
(5) Nothing in this section shall preclude the State Government from
conferring, under any law for the time being in force, on a
Commissioner of Police, all or any of the powers of an Executive
Magistrate in relation to a metropolitan area.
CrPC Section 21. Special Executive Magistrates. The State Government may
appoint, for such term as it may think fit, Executive Magistrates, to be
known as Special Executive Magistrates for particular areas or for the
performance of particular functions and confer on such Special Executive
Magistrates such of the powers as are conferrable under this Code on
Executive Magistrates, as it may deem fit.
CrPC Section 22. Local jurisdiction of Executive Magistrates.
(1) Subject to the control of the State Government, the District
Magistrate may, from time to time, define the local limits of the
areas within which the Executive Magistrates may exercise all or any
of the powers with which they may be invested under this Code.
999999. 1 Subs. by Act 45 of 1978, s. 7, for” all or any” (w. e.
f. 18- 12- 1978 ).
2. Ins. by s. 7, ibid. (w. e. f. 18- 12- 1978 ).
(2) Except as otherwise provided by such definition, the jurisdiction
and powers of every such Magistrate shall extend throughout the
district.
CrPC Section 23. Subordination of Executive Magistrates.
(1) All Executive Magistrates, other than the Additional District
Magistrate, shall be subordinate to the District Magistrate, and every
Executive Magistrate (other than the Sub- divisional Magistrate)
exercising powers in a sub- division shall also be subordinate to the
Sub- divisional Magistrate, subject, however, to the general control
of the District Magistrate.
(2) The District Magistrate may, from time to time, make rules or give
special orders, consistent with this Code, as to the distribution of
business among the Executive Magistrates subordinate to him and as to
the allocation of business to an additional District Magistrate.
CrPC Section 24. 1 Public Prosecutors.
(1) For every High Court, the Central Government or the State
Government shall, after consultation with the High Court, appoint a
Public Prosecutor and may also appoint one or more Additional Public
Prosecutors, for conducting in such Court, any prosecution, appeal or
other proceeding on behalf of the Central Government or State
Government, as the case may be.
(2) The Central Government may appoint one or more Public Prosecutors
for the purpose of conducting any case or class of cases in any
district or local area.
(3) For every district, the State Government shall appoint a Public
Prosecutor and may also appoint one or more Additional Public
Prosecutors for the district: Provided that the Public Prosecutor or
Additional Public Prosecutor appointed for one district may be
appointed also to be a Public Prosecutor or an Additional Public
Prosecutor, as the case may be, for another district.
(4) The District Magistrate shall, in consultation with the Sessions
Judge, prepare a panel of names of persons, who are, in his opinion
fit to be appointed as Public Prosecutors or Additional Public
Prosecutors for the district.
(5) No person shall be appointed by the State Government as the Public
Prosecutor or Additional Public Prosecutor for the district unless
his name appears in the panel of names prepared by the District
Magistrate under sub- section (4).
1. Subs. by Act 45 of 1978, s. 8, for s. 24 (w. e. f. 18- 12- 1978
).
(6) Notwithstanding anything contained in sub- section (5), where in a
State there exists a regular Cadre of Prosecuting Officers, the State
Government shall appoint a Public Prosecutor or an Additional Public
Prosecutor only from among the persons constituting such Cadre:
Provided that where, in the opinion of the State Government, no
suitable person is available in such Cadre for such appointment that
Government may appoint a person as Public Prosecutor or Additional
Public Prosecutor, as the case may be, from the panel of names
prepared by the District Magistrate under sub- section (4).
(7) A person shall be eligible to be appointed as a Public Prosecutor
or an Additional Public Prosecutor under sub- section (1) or sub-
section (2) or sub- section (3) or sub- section (6), only if he has
been in practice as an advocate for not less than seven years.
(8) The Central Government or the State Government may appoint, for
the purposes of any case or class of cases, a person who has been in
practice as an advocate for not less than ten years as a Special
Public Prosecutor.
(9) For the purposes of sub- section (7) and sub- section (8), the
period during which a person has been in practice as a pleader, or has
rendered (whether before or after the commencement of this Code)
service as a Public Prosecutor or as an Additional Public Prosecutor
or Assistant Public Prosecutor or other Prosecuting Officer, by
whatever name called, shall be deemed to be the period during which
such person has been in practice as an advocate.]
CrPC Section 25. Assistant Public Prosecutors.
(1) The State Government shall appoint in every district one or more
Assistant Public Prosecutors for conducting prosecutions in the Courts
of Magistrates.
(1A) 1 The Central Government may appoint one or more
Assistant Public Prosecutors for the purpose of conducting any case or
class of cases in the Courts of Magistrates.]
(2) Save as otherwise provided in sub- section (3), no police officer
shall be eligible to be appointed as an Assistant Public Prosecutor.
1. Ins. by Act 45 of 1978, s. 9 (w. e. f. 18- 12- 1978 )
(3) Where no Assistant Public Prosecutor is available for the purposes
of any particular case, the District Magistrate may appoint any other
person to be the Assistant Public Prosecutor in charge of that case;
Provided that a police officer shall not be so appointed-
(a) if he has taken any part in the investigation into the offence
with respect to which the accused being prosecuted; or
(b) if he is below the rank of Inspector. CHAP POWER OF COURTS
CHAPTER III POWER OF COURTS
CrPC Section 26. Courts by which offences are triable. Subject to the other
provisions of this Code,-
(a) any offence under the Indian Penal Code (45 of 1860 ), may be
tried by-
(i) the High Court, or
(ii) the Court of Session, or
(iii) any other Court by which such offence is shown in the First
Schedule to be triable;
(b) any offence under any other law shall, when any Court is mentioned
in this behalf in such law, be tried by such Court and when no Court
is so mentioned, may be tried by-
(i) the High Court, or
(ii) any other Court by which such offence is shown in the First
Schedule to be triable.
CrPC Section 27. Jurisdiction in the case of juveniles. Any offence not
punishable with death or imprisonment for life, committed by any person
who at the date when he appears or is brought before the Court is under
the age of sixteen years, may be tried by the Court of a Chief Judicial
Magistrate, or by any Court specially empowered under the Children Act,
1960 (60 of 1960 ), or any other law for the time being in force
providing for the treatment, training and rehabilitation of youthful
offenders.
CrPC Section 28. Sentences which High Courts and Sessions Judges may pass.
(1) A High Court may pass any sentence authorised by law.
(2) A Sessions Judge or Additional Sessions Judge may pass any
sentence authorised by law; but any sentence of death passed by any
such Judge shall be subject to confirmation by the High Court.
(3) An Assistant Sessions Judge may pass any sentence authorised by
law except a sentence of death or of imprisonment for life or of
imprisonment for a term exceeding ten years.
CrPC Section 29. Sentences which Magistrates may pass.
(1) The Court of a Chief Judicial Magistrate may pass any sentence
authorised by law except a sentence of death or of imprisonment for
life or of imprisonment for a term exceeding seven years.
(2) The Court of a Magistrate of the first class may pass a sentence
of imprisonment for a term not exceeding three years, or of fine not
exceeding five thousand rupees, or of both.
(3) The Court of a Magistrate of the second class may pass a sentence
of imprisonment for a term not exceeding one year, or of fine not
exceeding one thousand rupees, or of both.
(4) The Court of a Chief Metropolitan Magistrate shall have the powers
of the Court of a Chief Judicial Magistrate and that of a Metropolitan
Magistrate, the powers of the Court of a Magistrate of the first
class.
CrPC Section 30. Sentences of imprisonment in default of fine.
(1) The Court of a Magistrate may award such term of imprisonment in
default of payment of fine as is authorised by law: Provided that the
term-
(a) is not in excess of the powers of the Magistrate under section
29;
(b) shall not, where imprisonment has been awarded as part of the
substantive sentence, exceed one- fourth of the term of imprisonment
which the Magistrate is competent to inflict as punishment for the
offence otherwise than as imprisonment in default of payment of the
fine.
(2) The imprisonment awarded under this section may be in addition to
a substantive sentence of imprisonment for the maximum term awardable
by the Magistrate under section 29.
CrPC Section 31. Sentences in cases of conviction of several offences at one
trial.
(1) When a person is convicted at one trial of two or more offences,
the Court may, subject to the provisions of section 71 of the Indian
Penal Code (45 of 1860 ), sentence him for such offences, to the
several punishments prescribed therefor which such Court is competent
to inflict; such punishments when consisting of imprisonment to
commence the one after
the expiration of the other in such order as the Court may direct,
unless the Court directs that such punishments shall run concurrently.
(2) In the case of consecutive sentences, it shall not be necessary
for the Court by reason only of the aggregate punishment for the
several offences being in excess of the punishment which it is
competent to inflict on conviction of a single offence, to send the
offender for trial before a higher Court: Provided that-
(a) in no case shall such person be sentenced to imprisonment for
longer period than fourteen years;
(b) the aggregate punishment shall not exceed twice the amount of
punishment which the Court is competent to inflict for a single
offence.
(3) For the purpose of appeal by a convicted person, the aggregate of
the consecutive sentences passed against him under this section shall
be deemed to be a single sentence.
CrPC Section 32. Mode of conferring powers.
(1) In conferring powers under this Code, the High Court or the State
Government, as the case may be, may, by order, empower persons
specially by name or in virtue of their offices or classes of
officials generally by their official titles.
(2) Every such order shall take effect from the date on which it is
communicated to the person so empowered.
CrPC Section 33. Powers of officers appointed. Whenever any person holding an
office in the service of Government who has been invested by the High
Court or the State Government with any powers under this Code throughout
any local area is appointed to an equal or higher office of the same
nature, within a like local area under the same State Government, he
shall, unless the High Court or the State Government, as the case may
be, otherwise directs, or has otherwise directed, exercise the same
powers in the local area in which he is so appointed.
CrPC Section 34. Withdrawal of powers.
(1) The High Court or the State Government, as the case may be, may
withdraw all or any of the powers conferred by it under this Code on
any person or by any officer subordinate to it.
(2) Any powers conferred by the Chief Judicial Magistrate or by the
District Magistrate may be withdrawn by the respective Magistrate by
whom such powers were conferred.
CrPC Section 35. Powers of Judges and Magistrates exercisable by their
successors- in- office.
(1) Subject to the other provisions of this Code, the powers and
duties of a Judge or Magistrate may be exercised or performed by his
successor- in- office.
(2) When there is any doubt as to who is the successor- in- office of
any Additional or Assistant Sessions Judge, the Sessions Judge shall
determine by order in writing the Judge who shall, for the purposes of
this Code or of any proceedings or order thereunder, be deemed to be
the successor- in- office of such Additional or Assistant Sessions
Judge.
(3) When there is any doubt as to who is the successor- in- office of
any Magistrate, the Chief Judicial Magistrate, or the District
Magistrate, as the case may be, shall determine by order in writing
the Magistrate who shall, for the purposes of this Code or of any
proceedings or order thereunder, be deemed to be the successor- in-
office of such Magistrate. CHAP A.- POWERS OF SUPERIOR OFFICERS OF
POLICE CHAPTER IV A.- POWERS OF SUPERIOR OFFICERS OF POLICE
CrPC Section 36. Powers of superior officers of police. Police officers
superior in rank to an officer in charge of a police station may
exercise the same powers, throughout the local area to which they are
appointed, as may be exercised by such officer within the limits of his
station. B.- AID TO THE MAGISTRATES AND THE POLICE
CrPC Section 37. Public when to assist Magistrates and police. Every person
is bound to assist a Magistrate or police officer reasonably demanding
his aid-
(a) in the taking or preventing the escape of any other person whom
such Magistrate or police officer is authorised to arrest; or
(b) in the prevention or suppression of a breach of the peace; or
(c) in the prevention of any injury attempted to be committed to any
railway, canal, telegraph or public property.
CrPC Section 38. Aid to person, other than police officer, executing,
warrant. When a warrant is directed to a person other than a police
officer, any other person may aid in the execution of such warrant, if
the person to whom the warrant is directed be near at hand and acting in
the execution of the warrant.
CrPC Section 39. Public to give information of certain offences.
(1) Every person, aware of the commission of, or of the intention of
any other person to commit, any offence punishable under any of the
following sections of the Indian Penal Code, (45 of 1860 ), namely:-
(i) sections 121 to 126, both inclusive, and section 130 (that is to
say, offences against the State specified in Chapter VI of the said
Code);
(ii) sections 143, 144, 145, 147 and 148 (that is to say, offences
against the public tranquillity specified in Chapter VIII of the
said Code);
(iii) sections 161 to 165A, both inclusive (that is to say, offences
relating to illegal gratification);
(iv) sections 272 to 278, both inclusive (that is to say, offences
relating to adulteration of food and drugs, etc.);
(v) sections 302, 303 and 304 (that is to say, offences affecting
life);
(va) 1 section 364A (that is to say, offence relating to
kidnapping for ransom, etc.);
(vi) section 382 (that is to say, offence of theft after preparation
made for causing death, hurt or restraint in order to the committing
of the theft);
(vii) sections 392 to 399, both inclusive, and section 402 (that is
to say, offences of robbery and dacoity);
(viii) section 409 (that is to say, offence relating to criminal
breach of trust by public servant, etc.);
(ix) sections 431 to 439, both inclusive (that is to say, offences
of mischief against property);
(x) sections 449 and 450 (that is to say, office of house-
trespass);
(xi) sections 456 to 460, both inclusive (that is to say, offences
of lurking house- trespass); and
(xii) sections 489A to 489E, both inclusive (that is to say,
offences relating to currency notes and bank notes) shall, in the
absence of any reasonable excuse, the burden of proving which
excuse shall lie upon the person so aware, forthwith give
information to the nearest Magistrate or police officer of such
commission or intention.
(2) For the purposes of this section, the term” offence” includes any
act committed at any place out of India which would constitute an
offence if committed in India.
1. Ans. by Act 42 of 1993, s. 3.
CrPC Section 40. Duty of officers employed in connection with the affairs of
a village to make certain report.
(1) Every officer employed in connection with the affairs of a village
and every person residing in a village shall forthwith communicate to
the nearest Magistrate or to the officer in charge of the nearest
police station, whichever is nearer, any information which he may
possess respecting-
(a) the permanent or temporary residence of any notorious receiver
or vendor of stolen property in or near such village;
(b) the resort to any place within, or the passage through, such
village of any person whom he knows, or reasonably suspects, to be a
thug, robber, escaped convict or proclaimed offender;
(c) the commission of, or intention to commit, in or near such
village any non- bailable offence or any offence punishable under
section 143, section 144, section 145, section 147, or section 148
of the Indian Penal Code (45 of 1860 );
(d) the occurrence in or near such village of any sudden or
unnatural death or of any death under suspicious circumstances or
the discovery in or near such village of any corpse or part of a
corpse, in circumstances which lead to a reasonable suspicion that
such a death has occurred or the disappearance from such village of
any person in circumstances which lead to a reasonable suspicion
that a non- bailable offence has been committed in respect of such
person;
(e) the commission of, or intention to commit, at any place out of
India near such village any act which, if committed in India, would
be an offence punishable under any of the following sections of the
Indian Penal Code (45 of 1860 ), namely, 231 to 238 (both
inclusive), 302, 304, 382, 392 to 399 (both inclusive), 402, 435,
436, 449, 450, 457 to 460 (both inclusive), 489A, 489B, 489C and
489D;
(f) any matter likely to affect the maintenance of order or the
prevention of crime or the safety of person or property respecting
which the District Magistrate, by general or special order made with
the previous sanction of the State Government, has directed him to
communicate information.
(2) In this section,-
(i) “village” includes village- lands;
(ii) the expression” proclaimed offender” includes any person
proclaimed as an offender by any Court or authority in any territory
in India to which this Code does not extend, in respect of any act
which if committed in the territories to which this Code extends,
would be an offence punishable under any of the following sections
of the Indian Penal Code (45 of 1860 ), namely, 302, 304, 382, 392
to 399 (both inclusive), 402, 435, 436, 449, 450 and 457 to 460
(both inclusive);
(iii) the words” officer employed in connection with the affairs of
the village” means a member of the panchayat of the village and
includes the headman and every officer or other person appointed to
perform any function connected with the administration of the
village. CHAP ARREST OF PERSONS CHAPTER V ARREST OF PERSONS
CrPC Section 41. When police may arrest without warrant.
(1) Any police officer may without an order from a Magistrate and
without a warrant, arrest any person-
(a) who has been concerned in any cognizable offence, or against
whom a reasonable complaint has been made, or credible information
has been received, or a reasonable suspicion exists, of his having
been so concerned; or
(b) who has in his possession without lawful excuse, the burden of
proving which excuse shall lie on such person, any implement of
house- breaking; or
(c) who has been proclaimed as an offender either under this Code or
by order of the State Government; or
(d) in whose possession anything is found which may reasonably be
suspected to be stolen property and who may reasonably be suspected
of having committed an offence with reference to such thing; or
(e) who obstructs a police officer while in the execution of his
duty, or who has escaped, or attempts to escape, from lawful
custody; or
(f) who is reasonably suspected of being a deserter from any of the
Armed Forces of the Union; or
(g) who has been concerned in, or against whom a reasonable
complaint has been made, or credible information has been received,
or a reasonable suspicion exists, of his having been concerned in,
any act committed at any place out of India which, if committed in
India, would have been punishable as an offence, and for which he
is, under any law relating to extradition, or otherwise, liable to
be apprehended or detained in custody in India; or
(h) who, being a released convict, commits a breach of any rule made
under sub- section (5) of section 356; or
(i) for whose arrest any requisition, whether written or oral, has
been received from another police officer, provided that the
requisition specifies the person to be arrested and the offence or
other cause for which the arrest is to be made and it appears
therefrom that the person might lawfully be arrested without a
warrant by the officer who issued the requisition.
(2) Any officer in charge of a police station may, in like manner,
arrest or cause to be arrested any person, belonging to one or more of
the categories of persons specified in section 109 or section 110.
CrPC Section 42. Arrest on refusal to give name and residence.
(1) When any person who, in the presence of a police officer, has
committed or has been accused of committing a non- cognizable offence
refuses, on demand of such officer, to give his name and residence or
gives a name or residence which such officer has reason to believe to
be false, he may be arrested by such officer in order that his name or
residence may be ascertained.
(2) When the true name and residence of such person have been
ascertained he shall be released on his executing a bond, with or
without sureties, to appear before a Magistrate if so required:
Provided that, if such person is not resident in India, the bond shall
be secured by a surety or sureties resident in India.
(3) Should the true name and residence of such person not be
ascertained within twenty- four hours from the time of arrest or
should he fail to execute the bond, or, if so required, to furnish
sufficient sureties. he shall forthwith be forwarded to the nearest
Magistrate having jurisdiction.
CrPC Section 43. Arrest by private person and procedure on such arrest.
(1) Any private person may arrest or cause to be arrested any person
who in his presence commits a non- bailable and cognizable offence, or
any proclaimed offender, and, without unnecessary delay, shall make
over or cause to be made over any person so arrested to a police
officer, or, in the absence of a police officer, take such person or
cause him to be taken in custody to the nearest police station.
(2) If there is reason to believe that such person comes under the
provisions of section 41, a police officer shall re- arrest him.
(3) If there is reason to believe that he has committed a non-
cognizable offence, and he refuses on the demand of a police officer
to give his name and residence, or gives a name or residence which
such officer has reason to believe to be false, he shall be dealt with
under the provisions of section 42; but if there is no sufficient
reason to believe that he has committed any offence, he shall be at
once released.
CrPC Section 44. Arrest by Magistrate.
(1) When any offence is committed in the presence of a Magistrate,
whether Executive or Judicial, within his local jurisdiction, he may
himself arrest or order any person to arrest the offender, and may
thereupon, subject to the provisions herein contained as to bail,
commit the offender to custody.
(2) Any Magistrate, whether Executive or Judicial, may at any time
arrest or direct the arrest, in his presence, within his local
jurisdiction, of any person for whose arrest he is competent at the
time and in the circumstances to issue a warrant.
CrPC Section 45. Protection of members of the Armed Forces from arrest.
(1) Notwithstanding anything contained in sections 41 to 44 (both
inclusive), no member of the Armed Forces of the Union shall be
arrested for anything done or purported to be done by him in the
discharge of his official duties except after obtaining the consent of
the Central Government.
(2) The State Government may, by notification, direct that the
provisions of sub- section (1) shall apply to such class or category
of the members of the Force charged with the maintenance of public
order as may be specified therein, wherever they may be serving, and
thereupon the provisions of that sub- section shall apply as if for
the expression” Central Government” occurring therein, the expression”
State Government” were substituted.
CrPC Section 46. Arrest how made.
(1) In making an arrest the police officer or other person making the
same shall actually touch or confine the body of the person to be
arrested, unless there be a submission to the custody by word or
action.
(2) If such person forcibly resists the endeavour to arrest him, or
attempts to evade the arrest, such police officer or other person may
use all means necessary to effect the arrest.
(3) Nothing in this section gives a right to cause the death of a
person who is not accused of an offence punishable with death or with
imprisonment for life.
CrPC Section 47. Search of place entered by person sought to be arrested.
(1) If any person acting under a warrant of arrest, or any police
officer having authority to arrest, has reason to believe that the
person to be arrested has entered into, or is within, any place, any
person residing in, or being in charge of, such place shall, on demand
of such person acting as aforesaid or such police officer, allow him
free ingress thereto, and afford all reasonable facilities for a
search therein.
(2) If ingress to such place cannot be obtained under subsection (1),
it shall be lawful in any case for a person acting under a warrant and
in any case in which a warrant may issue, but cannot be obtained
without affording the person to be arrested an opportunity of escape,
for a police officer to enter such place and search therein, and in
order to effect an entrance into such place, to break open any outer
or inner door or window of any house or place, whether that of the
person to be arrested or of any other person, if after notification of
his authority and purpose, and demand of admittance duly made, he
cannot otherwise obtain admittance: Provided that, if any such place
is an apartment in the actual occupancy of a female (not being the
person to be arrested) who, according to custom, does not appear in
public, such person or police officer shall, before entering such
apartment, give notice to such female that she is at liberty to
withdraw and shall afford her every reasonable facility for
withdrawing, and may then break open the apartment and enter it.
(3) Any police officer or other person authorised to make an arrest
may break open any outer or inner door or window of any house or place
in order to liberate himself or any other person who, having lawfully
entered for the purpose of making an arrest, is detained therein.
CrPC Section 48. Pursuit of offenders into other jurisdictions. A police
officer may, for the purpose of arresting without warrant any person
whom he is authorised to arrest, pursue such person into any place in
India.
CrPC Section 49. No unnecessary restraint. The person arrested shall not be
subjected to more restraint than is necessary to prevent his escape.
CrPC Section 50. Person arrested to be informed of grounds of arrest and of
right to bail.
(1) Every police officer or other person arresting any person without
warrant shall forthwith communicate to him full particulars of the
offence for which he is arrested or other grounds for such arrest.
(2) Where a police officer arrests without warrant any person other
than a person accused of a non- bailable offence, he shall inform the
person arrested that he is entitled to be released on bail and that he
may arrange for sureties on his behalf.
CrPC Section 51. Search of arrested person.
(1) Whenever a person is arrested by a police officer under a warrant
which does not provide for the taking of bail, or under a warrant
which provides for the taking of bail but the Person arrested cannot
furnish bail, and whenever a person is arrested without warrant, or by
a private person under a warrant, and cannot legally be admitted to
bail, or is unable to furnish bail, the officer making the arrest or,
when the arrest is made by a private person, the police officer to
whom he makes over the person arrested, may search such person, and
place in safe custody all articles, other than necessary wearing-
apparel, found upon him and where any article is seized from the
arrested person, a receipt showing the articles taken in possession by
the police officer shall be given to such person.
(2) Whenever it is necessary to cause a female to be searched, the
search shall be made by another female with strict regard to decency.
CrPC Section 52. Power to size offensive weapons. The officer or other person
making any arrest under this Code may take from the person arrested any
offensive weapons which he has about his person, and shall deliver all
weapons so taken to the Court or officer before which or whom the
officer or person making the arrest is required by this Code to produce
the person arrested.
CrPC Section 53. Examination of accused by medical practitioner at the
request of police officer.
(1) When a person is arrested on a charge of committing an offence of
such a nature and alleged to have been committed under such
circumstances that there are reasonable grounds for believing that an
examination of his person will afford evidence as to the commission of
an offence, it shall be lawful for a registered medical practitioner,
acting at the request of a police officer not below the rank of sub-
inspector,
and for any person acting in good faith in his aid and under his
direction, to make such an examination of the person arrested as is
reasonably necessary in order to ascertain the facts which may afford
such evidence, and to use such force as is reasonably for that
purpose.
(2) Whenever the person of a female is to be examined under this
section, the examination shall be made only by, or under the
supervision of, a female registered medical practitioner.
Explanation.- In this section and in section 54,” registered medical
practitioner” means a medical practitioner who possesses any
recognized medical qualification as defined in clause (h) of section 2
of the Indian Medical Council Act, 1956 (102 of 1956 ) and whose name
has been entered in a State Medical Register.
CrPC Section 54. Examination of arrested person by medical practitioner at
the request of the arrested person. When a person who is arrested,
whether on a charge or otherwise alleges, at the time when he is
produced before a Magistrate or at any time during the period of his
detention in custody that the examination of his body will afford
evidence which will disprove the commission by him of any offence or
which will establish the commission by any other person of any offence
against his body, the Magistrate shall, if requested by the arrested
person so to do direct the examination of the body of such person by a
registered medical practitioner unless the Magistrate considers that the
request is made for the purpose of vexation or delay or for defeating
the ends of justice.
CrPC Section 55. Procedure when police officer deputes subordinate to arrest
with out warrant.
(1) When any officer in charge of a police station or any police
officer making an investigation under Chapter XII requires any officer
subordinate to him to arrest without a warrant (otherwise than in his
presence) any person who may lawfully be arrested without a warrant,
he shall deliver to the officer required to make the arrest an order
in writing, specifying the person to be arrested and the offence or
other cause for which the arrest is to be made and the officer so
required shall, before making the arrest, notify to the person to be
arrested the substance of the order and, if so required by such
person, shall show him the order.
(2) Nothing in sub- section (1) shall affect the power of a police
officer to arrest a person under section 41.
CrPC Section 56. Person arrested to be taken before Magistrate of officer in
charge of police station. A police officer making an arrest without
warrant shall, without unnecessary delay and subject to the provisions
herein contained as to
bail, take or send the person arrested before a Magistrate having
jurisdiction in the case, or before the officer in charge of a police
station.
CrPC Section 57. Person arrested not to be detained more than twenty- four
hours. No police officer shall detain in custody a person arrested
without warrant for a longer period than under all the circumstances of
the case is reasonable, and such period shall not, in the absence of a
special order of a Magistrate under section 167, exceed twenty- four
hours exclusive of the time necessary for the journey from the place of
arrest to the Magistrate’ s Court.
CrPC Section 58. Police to report apprehensions. Officers in charge of police
stations shall report to the District Magistrate, or, if he so directs,
to the Sub- divisional Magistrate, the cases of all persons arrested
without warrant, within the limits of their respective stations, whether
such persons have been admitted to bail or otherwise.
CrPC Section 59. Discharge of person apprehended. No person who has been
arrested by a police officer shall be discharged except on his own bond,
or on bail, or under the special order of a Magistrate.
CrPC Section 60. Power, on escape, to pursue and retake.
(1) If a person in lawful custody escapes or is rescued, the person
from whose custody he escaped or was rescued may immediately pursue
and arrest him in any place in India.
(2) The provisions of section 47 shall apply to arrests under sub-
section (1) although the person making any such arrest is not acting
under a warrant and is not a police officer having authority to
arrest. CHAP PROCESSES TO COMPEL APPEARANCE CHAPTER VI PROCESSES TO
COMPEL APPEARANCE A.- Summons
CrPC Section 61. Form of summons. Every summons issued by a Court under this
Code shall be in writing, in duplicate, signed by the presiding officer
of such Court or by such other officer as the High Court may, from time
to time, by rule direct, and shall bear the seal of the Court,
CrPC Section 62. Summons how served.
(1) Every summons shall be served by a police officer, or subject to
such rules as the State Government may make in this behalf, by an
officer of the Court issuing it or other public servant.
(2) The summons shall, if practicable, be served personally on the
person summoned, by delivering or tendering to him one of the
duplicates of the summons.
(3) Every person on whom a summons is so served shall, if so required
by the serving officer, sign a receipt therefor on the back of the
other duplicate.
CrPC Section 63. Service of summons on corporate bodies and societies.
Service of a summons on a corporation may be effected by serving it on
the secretary, local manager or other principal officer of the
corporation, or by letter sent by registered post, addressed to the
chief officer of the corporation in India, in which case the service
shall be deemed to have been effected when the letter would arrive in
ordinary course of post. Explanation.- In this section” corporation”
means an incorporated company or other body corporate and includes a
society registered under the Societies Registration Act, 1860 (21 of
1860 ).
CrPC Section 64. Service when persons summoned cannot be found. Where the
person summoned cannot, by the exercise of due diligence, be found, the
summons may be served by leaving one of the duplicates for him with some
adult male member of his family residing with him, and the person with
whom the summons is so left shall, if so required by the serving
officer, sign a receipt therefor on the back of the other duplicate.
Explanation.- A servant is not a member of the family within the meaning
of this section.
CrPC Section 65. Procedure when service cannot be effected as before
provided. If service cannot by the exercise of due diligence be effected
as provided in section 62, section 63 or section 64, the serving officer
shall affix one of the duplicates of the summons to some conspicuous
part of the house or homestead in which the person summoned ordinarily
resides; and thereupon the Court, after making such inquiries as it
thinks fit, may either declare that the summons has been duly served or
order fresh service in such manner as it considers proper.
CrPC Section 66.
(1) Service on Government servant. Where the person summoned is in the
active service of the Government the Court issuing the summons shall
ordinarily send it in
duplicate to the head of the office in which such person is employed;
and such head shall thereupon cause the summons to be served in the
manner provided by section 62, and shall return it to the Court under
his signature with the endorsement required by that section.
(2) Such signature shall be evidence of due service.
CrPC Section 67. Service of summons outside local limits. When a Court
desires that a summons issued by it shall be served at any place outside
its local jurisdiction, it shall ordinarily send such summons in
duplicate to a Magistrate within whose local jurisdiction the person
summoned resides, or is, to be there served.
CrPC Section 68. Proof of service in such cases and when serving officer not
present.
(1) When a summons issued by a Court is served outside its local
jurisdiction, and in any case where the officer who has served a
summons is not present at the hearing of the case, an affidavit,
purporting to be made before a Magistrate, that such summons has been
served, and a duplicate of the summons purporting to be endorsed (in
the manner provided by section 62 or section 64) by the person to whom
it was delivered or tendered or with whom it was left, shall be
admissible in evidence, and the statements made therein shall be
deemed to be correct unless and until the contrary is proved.
(2) The affidavit mentioned in this section may be attached to the
duplicate of the summons and returned to the Court.
CrPC Section 69.
(1) Service of summons on witness by post. (1) Notwithstanding
anything contained in the preceding sections of this Chapter, a Court
issuing a summons to a witness may, in addition to and simultaneously
with the issue of such summons, direct a copy of the summons to be
served by registered post addressed to the witness at the place where
he ordinarily resides or carries on business or personally works for
gain.
(2) When an acknowledgment purporting to be signed by the witness or
an endorsement purporting to be made by a postal employee that the
witness refused to take delivery of the summons has been received, the
Court issuing the summons may declare that the summons has been duly
served. B.- Warrant of arrest
CrPC Section 70. Form of warrant of arrest and duration.
(1) Every warrant of arrest issued by a Court under this Code shall be
in writing, signed by the presiding officer of such Court and shall
bear the seal of the Court.
(2) Every such warrant shall remain in force until it is cancelled by
the Court which issued it, or until it is executed.
CrPC Section 71. Power to direct security to be taken.
(1) Any Court issuing a warrant for the arrest of any person may be in
its discretion direct by endorsement on the warrant that, if such
person executes a bond with sufficient sureties for his attendance
before the Court at a specified time and thereafter until otherwise
directed by the Court, the officer to whom the warrant is directed
shall take such security and shall release such person from custody.
(2) The endorsement shall state-
(a) the number of sureties;
(b) the amount in which they and the person for whose arrest the
warrant is issued, are to be respectively bound;
(c) the time at which he is to attend before the Court.
(3) Whenever security is taken under this section, the officer to whom
the warrant is directed shall forward the bond to the Court.
CrPC Section 72. Warrants to whom directed.
(1) A warrant of arrest shall ordinarily be directed to one or more
police officers; but the Court issuing such a warrant may, if its
immediate execution is necessary and no police officer is immediately
available, direct it to any other person or persons, and such person
or persons shall execute the same.
(2) When a warrant is directed to more officers or persons than one,
it may be executed by all, or by any one or more of them.
CrPC Section 73. Warrant may be directed any person.
(1) The Chief Judicial Magistrate or a Magistrate of the first class
may direct a warrant to any person within his local jurisdiction for
the arrest of any escaped convict, proclaimed offender or of any
person who is accused of a non- bailable, offence and is evading
arrest.
(2) Such person shall acknowledge in writing the receipt of the
warrant, and shall execute it if the person for whose arrest it was
issued, is in, or enters on, any land or other property under his
charge.
(3) When the person against whom such warrant is issued is arrested,
he shall be made over with the warrant to the nearest police officer,
who shall cause him to be taken before a Magistrate having
jurisdiction in the case, unless security is taken under section 71.
CrPC Section 74. Warrant directed to police officer. A warrant directed to
any police officer may also be executed by any other police officer
whose name is endorsed upon, the warrant by the officer to whom it is
directed or endorsed.
CrPC Section 75. Notification of substance of warrant. The police officer or
other person executing a warrant of arrest shall notify the substance
thereof to the person to be arrested, and, if so required, shall show
him the warrant.
CrPC Section 76. Person arrested to be brought before Court without delay.
The police officer or other person executing a warrant of arrest shall
(subject to the provisions of section 71 as to security) without
unnecessary delay bring the person arrested before the Court before
which he is required by law to produce such person: Provided that such
delay shall not, in any case, exceed twenty- four hours exclusive of the
time necessary for the journey from the place of arrest to the
Magistrate’ s Court.
CrPC Section 77. Where warrant may be executed. A warrant of arrest may be
executed at any place in India.
CrPC Section 78. Warrant forwarded for execution outside jurisdiction.
(1) When a warrant is to be executed outside the local jurisdiction of
the Court issuing it, such Court may, instead of directing the warrant
to a police officer within its jurisdiction, forward it by post or
otherwise to any Executive Magistrate or District Superintendent of
Police or Commissioner of Police within the local limits of whose
jurisdiction it is to be executed; and the Executive Magistrate or
District Superintendent or Commissioner shall endorse his name
thereon, and if practicable, cause it to be executed in the manner
hereinbefore provided.
(2) The Court issuing a warrant under sub- section (1) shall forward,
along with the warrant, the substance of the information against the
person to be arrested together with such documents, if any, as may be
sufficient to enable the Court acting under section 81 to decide
whether bail should or should not be granted to the person.
CrPC Section 79. Warrant directed to police officer for execution outside
jurisdiction.
(1) When a warrant directed to a police officer is to be executed
beyond the local jurisdiction of the Court issuing the same, he. shall
ordinarily take it for endorsement either to an Executive Magistrate
or to a police officer not below the rank of an officer in charge of a
police station, within the local limits of whose jurisdiction the
warrant is to be executed.
(2) Such Magistrate or police officer shall endorse his name thereon
and such endorsement shall be sufficient authority to the police
officer to whom the warrant is directed to execute the same, and the
local police shall, if so required, assist such officer in executing
such warrant.
(3) Whenever there is reason to believe that the delay occasioned by
obtaining the endorsement of the Magistrate or police officer within
whose local jurisdiction the warrant is to be executed will prevent
such execution, the police officer to whom it is directed may execute
the same without such endorsement in any place beyond the local
jurisdiction of the Court which issued it.
CrPC Section 80. Procedure on arrest of person against whom warrant issued.
When a warrant of arrest is executed outside the district in which it
was issued, the person arrested shall, unless the Court which issued the
warrant is within thirty kilometres of the place of arrest or is nearer
than the Executive Magistrate or District Superintendent of Police or
Commissioner of Police within the local limits of whose jurisdiction the
arrest was made, or unless security is taken under section 71, be taken
before such Magistrate or District Superintendent or Commissioner.
CrPC Section 81. Procedure by Magistrate before whom such person arrested is
brought.
(1) The Executive Magistrate or District Superintendent of Police or
Commissioner of Police shall, if the person arrested appears to be the
person intended by the Court which issued the warrant, direct his
removal in custody to such Court: Provided that, if the offence is
bailable, and such person is ready and willing to give bail to the
satisfaction of such Magistrate, District Superintendent or
Commissioner, or a direction has been endorsed under section 71 on the
warrant and such person is ready and willing to give the security
required by such directions the Magistrate, District Superintendent or
Commissioner shall take such bail or security, as the case may be, and
forward the bond, to the Court which issued the warrant: Provided
further that if the offence is a non- bailable one, it shall be lawful
for the Chief Judicial Magistrate (subject to the provisions of
section 437), or the Sessions Judge, of the district in which the
arrest is made on consideration of the information and the documents
referred to in sub- section (2) of section 78, to release such person
on bail.
(2) Nothing in this section shall be deemed to prevent a police
officer from taking security under section 71,
C. Proclamation and attachment.
CrPC Section 82. Proclamation for person absconding.
(1) If any Court has reason to believe (whether after taking evidence
or not) that any person against whom a warrant has been issued by it
has absconded or is concealing himself so that such warrant cannot be
executed, such Court may publish a written proclamation requiring him
to appear at a specified place and at a specified time not less than
thirty days from the date of publishing such proclamation.
(2) The proclamation shall be published as follows:-
(i) (a) it shall be publicly read in some conspicuous place of the
town or village in which such person ordinarily resides;
(b) it shall be affixed to some conspicuous part of the house or
homestead in which such person ordinarily resides or to some
conspicuous place of such town or village;
(c) a copy thereof shall be affixed to some conspicuous part of
the Court- house;
(ii) the Court may also, if it thinks fit, direct a copy of the
proclamation to be published in a daily newspaper circulating in the
place in which such person ordinarily resides.
(3) A statement in writing by the Court issuing the proclamation to
the effect that the proclamation was duly published on a specified
day, in the manner specified in clause (i) of sub- section (2), shall
be conclusive evidence that the requirements of this section have been
complied with, and that the proclamation was published on such day.
CrPC Section 83. Attachment of Property of person absconding.
(1) The Court issuing a proclamation under section 82 may, for reasons
to be recorded in writing, at any time after the issue of the
proclamation, order the attachment of any property, movable or
immovable, or both, belonging to the proclaimed person: Provided that
where at the time of the issue of the proclamation the Court is
satisfied, by affidavit or otherwise, that the person in relation to
whom the proclamation is to, be issued,-
(a) is about to dispose of the whole or any part of his property, or
(b) is about to remove, the whole or any part of his property from
the local jurisdiction of the Court, it may order the attachment
simultaneously with the issue of the proclamation.
(2) Such order shall authorise the attachment of any property
belonging to such person within the district in which it is made; and
it shall
authorise the attachment of any property belonging to such person
without such district when endorsed by the District Magistrate within
whose district such property is situate.
(3) If the property ordered to be attached is a debt or other movable
property, the attachment under this section shall be made-
(a) by seizure; or
(b) by the appointment of a receiver; or
(c) by an order in writing prohibiting the delivery of such property
to the proclaimed person or to any one on his behalf; or
(d) by all or any two of such methods, as the Court thinks fit.
(4) If the property ordered to be attached is immovable, the
attachment under this section shall, in the case of land paying
revenue to the State Government, be made through the Collector of the
district which the land is situate, and in all other cases-
(a) by taking possession; or
(b) by the appointment of a receiver; or
(c) by an order in writing prohibiting the payment of rent on
delivery of property to the proclaimed person or to any one on his
behalf; or
(d) by all or any two of such methods, as the Court thinks fit.
(5) If the property ordered to be attached consists of live- stock or
is of a perishable nature, the Court may, if it thinks it expedient,
order immediate sale thereof, and in such case the proceeds of the
sale shall abide the order of the Court.
(6) The powers, duties and liabilities of a receiver appointed under
this section shall be the same as those of a receiver appointed under
the Code of Civil Procedure, 1908 (5 of 1908 ).
CrPC Section 84. Claims and objections to attachment.
(1) If any claim is preferred to, or objection made to the attachment
of, any property attached under section 83, within six months from the
date of such attachment, by any person other than the proclaimed
person, on the ground that the claimant or objector has an interest in
such property, and that such interest is not liable to attachment
under section 83, the claim or objection shall be inquired into, and
may be allowed or disallowed in whole or in part: Provided that any
claim preferred or objection made within the period allowed by this-
sub- section may, in the event of the death of the claimant or
objector, be continued by his legal representative.
(2) Claims or objections under sub- section (1) may be preferred or
made in the Court by which the order of attachment is issued, or, if
the claim or objection is in respect of property attached under an
order endorsed under sub- section (2) of section 83, in the Court of
the Chief Judicial Magistrate of the district in which the attachment
is made.
(3) Every such claim or objection shall be inquired into by the Court
in which it is preferred or made: Provided that, if it is preferred or
made in the Court of a Chief Judicial Magistrate, he may make it over
for disposal to any Magistrate subordinate to him.
(4) Any person whose claim or objection has been disallowed in whole
or in part by an order under sub- section (1) may, within a period of
one year from the date of such order, institute a suit to establish
the right which he claims in respect of the property in dispute; but
subject to the result of such suit, if any, the order shall be
conclusive.
CrPC Section 85. Release, sale and restoration of attached property.
(1) If the proclaimed person appears within the time specified in the
proclamation, the Court shall make an order releasing the property
from the attachment.
(2) If the proclaimed person does not appear within the time specified
in the proclamation, the property under the attachment shall be at the
disposal of the State Government; but it shall not be sold until the
expiration of six months from the date of the attachment and until any
claim preferred or objection made under section 84 has been disposed
under that section, unless it is subject to speedy and natural decay,
or the Court considers that the sale would be for the benefit of the
owner; in either of which cases the Court may cause it to be sold
whenever it thinks fit.
(3) If, within two years from the date of the attachment, any person
whose property is or has been at the disposal of the State Government,
under sub- section (2), appears voluntarily or is apprehended and
brought before the Court by whose order the property was attached, or
the Court to which such Court is subordinate, and proves to the
satisfaction of such Court that he did not abscond or conceal himself
for the purpose of avoiding execution of the warrant, and that he had
not such notice of the proclamation as to enable him to attend within
the time specified therein, such property, or, if the same has been
sold, the net proceeds of the sale, or, if part only thereof has been
sold, the net proceeds of the sale and the
residue of the property, shall, after satisfying therefrom all costs
incurred in consequence of the attachment, be delivered to him.
CrPC Section 86. Appeal from order rejecting application for restoration of
attached property. Any person referred to in sub- section (3) of section
85, who is aggrieved by any refusal to deliver property or the proceeds
of the sale thereof may appeal to the Court to which appeals ordinarily
lie from the sentences of the first- mentioned Court. D.- Other rules
regarding processes
CrPC Section 87. Issue of warrant in lieu of, or in addition to, summons. A
Court may, in any case in which it is empowered by this Code to issue a
summons for the appearance of any person, issue, after recording its
reasons in writing, a warrant for his arrest-
(a) if, either before the issue of such summons, or after the issue of
the same but before the time fixed for his appearance, the Court sees
reason to believe that he has absconded or will not obey the summons;
or
(b) if at such time he fails to appear and the summons is proved to
have been duly served in time to admit of his appearing in accordance
therewith and no reasonable excuse is offered for such failure.
CrPC Section 88. Power to take bond for appearance. When any person for whose
appearance or arrest the officer presiding in any Court is empowered to
issue a summons or warrant, is present in such Court, such officer may
require such person to execute a bond, with or without sureties, for his
appearance in such Court, or any other Court to which the case may be
transferred for trial.
CrPC Section 89. Arrest on breach of bond for appearance. When any person who
is bound by any bond taken under this Code to appear before a Court,
does not appear, the officer presiding in such Court may issue a warrant
directing that such person be arrested and produced before him.
CrPC Section 90. Provisions of this Chapter generally applicable to summonses
and warrants of arrest. The provisions contained in this Chapter
relating to a summons and warrant, and their issue, service and
execution, shall, so far as may be, apply to every summons and every
warrant of arrest issued under this Code.
CHAP PROCESSES TO COMPEL THE PRODUCTION OF THINGS CHAPTER VII PROCESSES
TO COMPEL THE PRODUCTION OF THINGS A.- Summons to produce
CrPC Section 91. Summons to produce document or other thing.
(1) Whenever any Court or any officer in charge of a police station
considers that the production of any document or other thing is
necessary or desirable for the purposes of any investigation, inquiry,
trial or other proceeding under this Code by or before such Court or
officer, such Court may issue a summons, or such officer a written
order, to the person in whose possession or power such document or
thing is believed to be, requiring him to attend and produce it, or to
produce it, at the time and place stated in the summons or order.
(2) Any person required under this section merely to produce a
document or other thing shall be deemed to have complied with the
requisition if he causes such document or thing to be produced instead
of attending personally to produce the same.
(3) Nothing in this section shall be deemed-
(a) to affect sections 123 and 124 of the Indian Evidence Act, 1872
(1 of 1872 ), or the Bankers’ Books Evidence Act, 1891 (13 of 1891 )
or
(b) to apply to a letter, postcard, telegram or other document or
any parcel or thing in the custody of the postal or telegraph
authority.
CrPC Section 92. Procedure as to letters and telegrams.
(1) If any document, parcel or thing In the custody of a postal or
telegraph authority is, in the opinion of the District Magistrate,
Chief Judicial Magistrate, Court of Session or High Court wanted for
the purpose of any investigation, inquiry, trial or other proceeding
under this Code, such Magistrate or Court may require the postal or
telegraph authority, as the case may be, to deliver the document,
parcel or thing to such person as the Magistrate or Court directs.
(2) If any such document, parcel or thing is, in the opinion of any
other Magistrate, whether Executive or Judicial, or of any
Commissioner of Police or District Superintendent of Police, wanted
for any such purpose, he may require the postal or telegraph
authority, as the case may be, to cause search to be made for and to
detail such document, parcel or thing pending the order of a District
Magistrate, Chief Judicial Magistrate or Court under sub- section (1).
CrPC Section 93. When search warrant may be issued.
(1) (a) Where any Court has reason to believe that a person to whom a
summons or order under section 91 or a requisition under sub- section
(1) of section 92 has been, or might be, addressed, will not or would
not produce the document or thing as required by such summons or
requisition, or
(b) where such document or thing is not known to the Court to be the
possession of any person, or
(c) where the Court considers that the purposes of any inquiry,
trial or other proceeding under this Code will be served by a
general search or inspection, it may issue a search- warrant; and
the person to whom such warrant is directed, may search or inspect
in accordance therewith and the provisions hereinafter contained.
(2) The Court may, if it thinks fit, specify in the warrant the
particular place or part thereof to which only the search or
inspection shall extend; and the person charged with the execution of
such warrant shall then search or inspect only the place or part so
specified.
(3) Nothing contained in this section shall authorise any Magistrate
other than a District Magistrate or Chief Judicial Magistrate to grant
a warrant to search for a document, parcel or other thing in the
custody of the postal or telegraph authority.
CrPC Section 94. Search of place suspected to contain stolen property, forged
documents, etc.
(1) If a District Magistrate, Sub- divisional Magistrate or Magistrate
of the first class, upon information and after such inquiry as he
thinks necessary, has reason to believe that any place is used for the
deposit or sale of stolen property, or for the deposit, sale or
production of any objectionable article to which this section applies,
or that only such objectionable article is deposited in any place, he
may by warrant authorise any police officer above the rank of a
constable-
(a) to enter, with such assistance as may be required, such place,
(b) to search the same in the manner specified in the warrant,
(c) to take possession of any property or article therein found
which he reasonably suspects to be stolen property or objectionable
article to which this section applies,
(d) to convey such property or article before a Magistrate, or to
guard the same on the spot until the offender is taken before
a Magistrate, or otherwise to dispose of it in some place of safety,
(e) to take into custody and carry before a Magistrate every person
found in such place who appears to have been privy to the deposit,
sale or production of any such property or article knowing or having
reasonable cause to suspect it to be stolen property or, as the case
may be, objectionable article to which this section applies.
(2) The objectionable articles to which this section applies are-
(a) counterfeit coin;
(b) pieces of metal made in contravention of the Metal Tokens Act,
1889 (1 of 1889 ), or brought into India in contravention of any
notification for the time being in force under section 11 of the
Customs Act, 1962 (52 of 1962 );
(c) counterfeit currency note; counterfeit stamps;
(d) forged documents;
(e) false seals;
(f) obscene objects referred to in section 292 of the Indian Penal
Code (45 of 1860 );
(g) instruments or materials used for the production of any of the
articles mentioned in clauses (a) to (f).
CrPC Section 95. Power to declare certain publications forfeited and to issue
search warrants for the same. Where-
(a) any newspaper, or book, or
(b) any document, wherever printed, appears to the State Government to
contain any matter the publication of which is punishable under
section 124A or section 153A or section 153B or section 292 or section
293 or section 295A of the Indian Penal Code (45 of 1860 ), the State
Government may, by notification, stating the grounds of its opinion,
declare every copy of the issue of the newspaper containing such
matter, and every copy of such book or other document to be forfeited
to Government, and thereupon any police officer may seize the same
wherever found in India and any Magistrate may by warrant authorise
any police officer not below the rank of sub- inspector to enter upon
and search for the same in any premises where any copy of such issue
or any such book or other document may be or may be reasonably
suspected to be.
(2) In this section and in section 96,-
(a) “newspaper” and” book” have the same meaning as in the Press
and Registration of Books Act, 1867 (25 of 1867 );
(b) “document” includes any painting, drawing or photograph, or
other visible representation.
(3) No order passed or action taken under this section shall be
called in question in any Court otherwise than in accordance with
the provisions of section 96.
CrPC Section 96. Application to High Court to set aside declaration of
forfeiture.
(1) Any person having any interest in any newspaper, book or other
document, in respect of which a declaration of forfeiture has been
made under section 95, may, within two months from the date of
publication in the Official Gazette of such declaration, apply to the
High Court to set aside such declaration on the ground that the issue
of the newspaper, or the book or other document, in respect of which
the declaration was made, did not contain any such matter as is
referred to in sub- section (1) of section 95.
(2) Every such application shall, where the High Court consists of
three or more Judges, be heard and determined by a Special Bench of
the High Court composed of three Judges and where the High Court
consists of less than three Judges, such Special Bench shall be
composed of all the Judges of that High Court.
(3) On the hearing of any such application with reference to any
newspaper, any copy of such newspaper may be given in evidence in aid
of the proof of the nature or tendency of the words, signs or visible
representations contained in such newspaper, in respect of which the
declaration of forfeiture was made.
(4) The High Court shall, if it is not satisfied that the issue of the
newspaper, or the book or other document, in respect of which the
application has been made, contained any such matter as is referred to
in sub- section (1) of section 95, set aside the declaration of
forfeiture.
(5) Where there is a difference of opinion among the Judges forming
the Special Bench, the decision shall be in accordance with the
opinion of the majority of those Judges.
CrPC Section 97. Search for persons wrongfully confined. If any District
Magistrate, Sub- divisional Magistrate or Magistrate of the first class
has reason to believe that any person is confined under such
circumstances that the confinement amounts to an offence, he
may issue a search- warrant, and the person to whom such warrant is
directed may search for the person so confined; and such search shall be
made in accordance therewith, and the person, if found, shall be
immediately taken before a Magistrate, who shall make such order as in
the circumstances of the case seems proper.
CrPC Section 98. Power to compel restoration of abducted females. Upon
complaint made on oath of the abduction or unlawful detention of a
woman, or a female child under the age of eighteen years, for any
unlawful purpose, a District Magistrate, Sub- divisional Magistrate or
Magistrate of the first class may make an order for the immediate
restoration of such woman to her liberty, or of such female child to her
husband, parent, guardian or other person having the lawful charge of
such child, and may compel compliance with such order, using such force
as may be necessary. C.- General provisions relating to searches
CrPC Section 99. Direction, etc., of search warrants. The provisions of
sections 38, 70, 72, 74, 77, 78 and 79 shall, so far as may be, apply to
all search- warrants issued under section 93, section 94, section 95 or
section 97.
CrPC Section 100. Persons in charge of closed place to allow search.
(1) Whenever any place liable to search or inspection under this
Chapter is closed, any person residing in, or being in charge of, such
place, shall, on demand of the officer or other person executing the
warrant, and on production of the warrant, allow him free ingress
thereto, and afford all reasonable facilities for a search therein.
(2) If ingress into such place cannot be so obtained, the officer or
other person executing the warrant may proceed in the manner provided
by sub- section (2) of section 47.
(3) Where any person in or about such place is reasonably suspected of
concealing about his person any article for which search should be
made, such person may be searched and if such person is a woman, the
search shall be made by another woman with strict regard to decency.
(4) Before making a search under this Chapter, the officer or other
person about to make it shall call upon two or more independent and
respectable inhabitants of the locality in which the place to be
searched is situate or of any other locality if no such inhabitant of
the said locality is available or is willing to be a witness to the
search, to attend and
witness the search and may issue an order in writing to them or any of
them so to do.
(5) The search shall be made in their presence, and a list of all
things seized in the course of such search and of the places in which
they are respectively found shall be prepared by such officer or other
person and signed by such witnesses; but no person witnessing a search
under this section shall be required to attend the Court as a witness
of the search unless specially summoned by it.
(6) The occupant of the place searched, or some person in his behalf,
shall, in every instance, be permitted to attend during the search.
and a copy of the list prepared under this section, signed by the said
witnesses, shall be delivered to such occupant or person.
(7) When any person is searched under sub- section (3), a list of all
things taken possession of shall be prepared, and a copy thereof shall
be delivered to such person.
(8) Any person who, without reasonable cause, refuses or neglects to
attend and witness a search under this section, when called upon to do
so by an order in writing delivered or tendered to him, shall be
deemed to have committed an offence under section 187 of the Indian
Penal Code (45 of 1860 ).
CrPC Section 101. Disposal of things found in search beyond jurisdiction.
When, in the execution of a search- warrant at any place beyond the
local jurisdiction of the Court which issued the same, any of the things
for which search is made, are found, such things, together with the list
of the same prepared under the provisions hereinafter contained, shall
be immediately taken before the Court issuing the warrant, unless such
place is nearer to the Magistrate having jurisdiction therein than to
such Court, in which case the list and things shall be immediately taken
before such Magistrate; and, unless there be good cause to the contrary,
such Magistrate shall make an order authorising them to be taken to such
Court. D.- Miscellaneous
CrPC Section 102. Power of police officer to seize certain property.
(1) Any police officer, may seize any property which may be alleged or
suspected to have been stolen, or which may be found under
circumstances which create suspicion of the commission of any offence.
(2) Such police officer, if subordinate to the officer in charge of a
police station, shall forthwith report the seizure to that officer.
(3) 1 Every police officer acting under sub- section (1)
shall forthwith report the seizure to the Magistrate having
jurisdiction and where the property seized is such that it cannot be
conveniently transported to the Court, he may give custody thereof to
any person on his executing a bond undertaking to produce the property
before the Court as and when required and to give effect to the
further orders of the Court as to the disposal of the same.]
CrPC Section 103. Magistrate may direct search in his presence. Any
Magistrate may direct a search to be made in his presence of any place
for the search of which he is competent to issue a search warrant.
CrPC Section 104. Power to impound document, etc., produced. Any Court may,
if it thinks fit, impound any document or thing produced before it under
this Code.
CrPC Section 105. Reciprocal arrangements regarding processes.
(1) Where a Court in the territories to which this Code extends
(hereafter in this section referred to as the said territories)
desires that-
(a) a summons to an accused person, or
(b) a warrant for the arrest of an accused person, or
(c) a summons to any person requiring him to attend and produce a
document or other thing, or to produce it, or
(d) a search- warrant, 2
issued by it shall be served or executed at any place,-
(i) within the local jurisdiction of a Court in any State or area
in India outside the said territories, it may send such summons or
warrant in duplicate by post or otherwise, to the presiding
officer of that Court to be served or executed; and where any
summons referred to in clause (a) or clause (c) has been so
served, the provisions of section 68 shall apply in relation to
such summons as if the presiding officer of the Court to whom it
is sent were a Magistrate in the said territories;
(ii) in any country or place outside India in respect of which
arrangements have been made by the Central Government with the
Government of such country or place for service or execution of
summons or warrant in relation to criminal matters (hereafter in
this section referred to as the contracting State), it may send
such summons or warrant in duplicate in such form, directed to
such Court, Judge or Magistrate, and sent to such authority for
transmission, as the Central Government may, by notification,
specify in this behalf.
(2) Where a Court in the said territories has received for service or
execution-
(a) a summons to an accused person, or
(b) a warrant for the arrest of an accused person, or
1. Ins. by Act 45 of 1978, s. 10 (w. e. f. 18- 12- 1978 ).
2. Subs. by Act 32 of 1988, S. 2.
(c) a summons to any person requiring him to attend and produce a
document or other thing or to produce it, or
(d) a search- warrant, 1
issued by–
(I) a Court is any State or area in India outside the said
territories;
(II) a Court, Judge or Magistrate in a contracting State, it shall
cause the same to be served or executed as if it were a summons or
warrant received by it form another Court in the said territories
for service or execution within its local jurisdiction; and where-
(i) a warrant of arrest has been executed, the person arrested
shall, so far as possible, be dealt with in accordance with
procedure prescribed by sections 80 and 81,
(ii) a search- warrant has been executed, the things found in the
search shall, so far as possible, be dealt with in accordance with
the procedure prescribed by section 101: 1 Provided
that in a case where a summons or search warrant received from a
contracting State has been executed, the documents or things
produced or things found in the search shall be forwarded to the
Court issuing the summons or search warrant through such authority
as the Central Government may, by notification, specify in this
behalf. CHAP SECURITY FOR KEEPING THE PEACE AND FOR GOOD BEHAVIOUR
CHAPTER VIII SECURITY FOR KEEPING THE PEACE AND FOR GOOD BEHAVIOUR
CrPC Section 106. Security for keeping the peace on conviction.
(1) When a Court of Session or Court of a Magistrate of the first
class convicts a person of any of the offences specified in sub-
section (2) or of abetting any such offence and is of opinion that it
is necessary to take security from such person for keeping the peace,
the Court may, at the time of passing sentence on such person, order
him to execute a bond, with or without sureties, for keeping the peace
for such period, not exceeding three years, as it thinks fit.
(2) The offences referred to in sub- section (1) are-
(a) any offence punishable under Chapter VIII of the Indian Penal
Code (45 of 1860 ), other than an offence punishable under section
153A or section 153B or section 154 thereof;
(b) any offence which consists of, or includes, assault or using
criminal force or committing mischief;
(c) any offence of criminal intimidation;
(d) any other offence which caused, or was intended or known to be
likely to cause, a breach of the peace.
(3) If the conviction is set aside on appeal or otherwise, the bond so
executed shall become void.
CHAP RECIPROCAL ARRANGEMENTS FOR ASSISTANCE IN CERTAIN MATTERS
ANDPROCEDURE FOR ATTACHMENT AND FORFEITURE OF PROPERTY 1
CHAPTER VIIA RECIPROCAL ARRANGEMENTS FOR ASSISTANCE IN CERTAIN MATTERS
AND PROCEDURE FOR ATTACHMENT AND FORFEITURE OF PROPERTY
999999. 1 Subs. and Ins. by Act 32 of 1988, S. 2.
2. Ins. by Act 40 of 1993, S. 2 (w. e. f. 20. 7. 1994 ).
CrPC Section 105A. Definition. In this Chapter, unless the context otherwise
requires,-
(a) “contracting State” means any country or place outside India in
respect of which arrangements have been made by the Central Government
with the Government of such country through a treaty or otherwise;
(b) “identifying” includes establishment of a proof that the property
was derived from, or used in the commission of an offence;
(c) “proceeds of crime” means any property derived or, obtained
directly or indirectly, by any person as a result of criminal activity
(including crime involving currency transfers) or the value of any
such property;
(d) “property” means Property and sets of every descrip- tion whether
corporeal or incorporeal, movable or immovable, tangible or intangible
and deeds and instruments evidencing title to, or interest in, such
property or assets derived or used in the commission of an offence and
includes property obtained through proceeds of crime;
(e) “tracing” mean determining the nature, source, dispo- sition,
movement, title or ownership of property.
CrPC Section 105B. Assistance in securing transfer of persons.
(1) Where a Court in India, in relation to a criminal matter, desires
that a warrant for arrest of any person to attend or produce a
document or other thing issued by it shall be executed in any place in
a contracting State, it shall send such warrant in duplicate in such
form to such Court, Judge or Magistrate through such authority, as the
Central Government may, by notification, specify in this behalf and
that Court, Judge or Magistrate, as the case may be, shall cause the
same to be executed.
(2) Notwithstanding anything contained in this Code, if, in the course
of an investigation or any inquiry into an offence, an appli- cation
is made by the investigating officer or any officer superior in rank
to the investigating officer that the attendance of a person who is in
any place in a contracting State is required in collection with such
investigation or inquiry and the Court, is satisfied that such
attendance is so required, it shall issue a summons or warrant, in
duplicate, against the said person to such Court, Judge or Magistrate,
in such form as the Central Government may, by notification, specify
in this behalf, to cause the same to be observed or executed.
(3) Where a Court in India, in relation to a criminal matter, has
received a warrant for arrest of any person requiring him to attend or
attend and produce a document or other thing in that Court or before
any other investigating agency, issued by a Court, Judge or Magistrate
in a contracting State, the same shall be executed as if it is the
warrant received by it from another Court in India for execution
within its local limits.
(4) Where a person transferred to a contracting State pursuant to sub-
section (3) is a prisoner in India, the Court in India or the Central
Government may impose such conditions as that Court or Government
deems fit.
1. Ins. by Act 40 of 1993, S. 2 (w. e. f. 20- 7- 1994 ).
(5) Where the person transferred to India pursuant, to sub- sec- tion
(1) or sub- section (2) is a prisoner in a contracting State, the
Court in India shall ensure that the conditions subject to which the
prisoner is transferred to India are complied with and such prisoner
shall be kept in such custody subject to such conditions as the
Central Government may direct in writing.
CrPC Section 105C. Assistance in relation to orders of attachment or
forfeiture of property.
(1) Where a Court in India has reasonable grounds to believe that any
property obtained by any person is derived or obtained, directly or
indirectly, by such person from the commission of an offence, it may
make an order of attachment or forfeiture of such property, as it may
deem fit under the provisions of sections 105D to 105J (both
inclusive).
(2) Where the Court has made an order for attachment or forfeiture of
any property under subsection (1), and such property is suspected to
be in a contracting State, the Court may issue a letter of request to
a Court or an authority in the contracting State for execution of such
order.
(3) Where a letter of request is received by the Central Gov- ernment
from a Court or an authority in a contracting State requesting
attachment or forfeiture of the property. in India, derived or
obtained, directly or indirectly, by any person from the commission of
an offence committed in that contracting State, the Central Government
may forward such letter of request to the Court as it thinks fit, for
execution in accordance with the provisions of sections 105D to 105J
(both inclusive) or, as the case may be, any other law for the time
being in force.
CrPC Section 105D. Identifying unlawfully acquired property.
(1) The Court shall, under sub- section (1), or on receipt of a letter
of request under sub- section (3) of section 105C, direct any police
officer not below the rank of Sub- Inspector of Police to take all
steps necessary for tracing and identifying such property.
(2) The steps referred to in sub- section (1) may include any inquiry
investigation or survey in respect of any person, place, property,
assets, documents, books of account in any bank or public financial
institutions or any other relevant matters.
(3) Any inquiry investigation or survey referred to in sub- section
(2) shall be carried out by an officer mentioned in sub- section (1)
in accordance with such directions issued by the said Court in this
behalf.
CrPC Section 105E. Seizure or attachment of property.
(1) Where any officer conducting an inquiry or investigation under
section 105D has a reason to believe that any property in relation to
which such inquiry or investigation is being conducted is likely to be
concealed, transferred or dealt with in any manner which will result
in disposal of such property, he may make an order for seizing such
property and where it is not practicable to seize such property, he
may make an order of attachment directing that such property shall not
be transferred or otherwise dealt with, except with the prior
permission of the officer making such order, and a copy of such order
shall be served on the person concerned.
(2) Any order made under sub- section (1) shall have no effect unless
the said order is confirmed by an order of the said Court within a
period of thirty days of its being made.
CrPC Section 105F. Management of properties seized or forfeited under this
Chapter.
(1) The Court may appoint the District Magistrate of the area where
the property is situated, or any other officer that may be nominated
by the District Magistrate, to perform the functions of an
Administrator of such property.
(2) The Administrator appointed under sub- section (1) shall receive
and manage the property in relation to which the order has been made
under subsection (1) of section 105E or under section 105H in such
manner and subject to such conditions as may be specified by the
Central Government.
(3) The Administrator shall also take such measures, as the Central
Government may direct, to dispose of the property which is forfeited
to the Central Government.
CrPC Section 105G. Notice of forfeiture of property.
(1) If as a result of the inquiry, investigation or survey under
section 105D, the Court has reason to believe that all or any of such
properties are proceeds of crime, it may serve a notice upon such
person (hereinafter referred to as the person affected) calling upon
him within a period of thirty days specified in the notice to indicate
the source of income, earnings or assets, ot of wceich or by means of
which be has acquired such property, the evident on which be relies
and other relevant information and particulars, and to show cause why
all or any of such properties, as the cam may be, should not be
declared to be proceeds of crime and forfeited to the Central
Government,
(2) Where a notice under sub- section (1) to any person specifies any
property as being held on behalf of such person by any other person, a
copy of the notice shall also be served upon such other
CrPC Section 105H. Forfeiture of property in certain cases.
(1) The Court may, after considering the explanation, if any to the
show- cause notice issued under section 105G and the material
available before it and after giving to the person affected (and in a
case where the person affected holds any property specified in the
notice through any other Person, to such other person also) a
reasonable opportunity of being heard by order record a finding
whether all or any of the properties in question are proceeds of
crime: Provided that if the person affected (and in a case where the
person affected holds any property specified in the notice through any
other person such other person also) does not appear before the Court
or represent his case before it within at period or thirty days
specified in the slow- cause notice, the Court may proceed to record a
finding under this sub- section ex parte on the basis of evidence
available before it.
(2) Where the Court is satisfied that some of the properties re-
ferred to in the slow- cause notice are proceeds of crime but it is
not possible to identify specifically such properties, then, it shall
be lawful for the Court to specify the properties which, to the best
of its judgment, are proceeds of crime and record a finding according-
ly under sub- section (1).
(3) Where the Court records a finding under this section to the effect
that any property is proceeds of crime, such property shall stand
forfeited to the Central Government free from all encumbrances.
(4) Where any shares in a company stand forfeited to the Central
Government under this section, then, the company shall, notwithstand-
ing anything contained in the Companies Act, 1956 (1 of 1956 ), or the
articles of association of the company, forthwith register the Central
Government as the transferee of such shares.
CrPC Section 105I. Fine in lieu of forfeiture.
(1) Where the Court makes a declaration that any property stands
forfeited to the Central Government under section 105H and it is a
case where the source of only a part of such property has not been
proved to the satisfaction of the Court, it shall make an order giving
an option to the person affected to pay, in lieu of forfeiture, a fine
equal to the market value of such part.
(2) Before making an order imposing a fine under sub- section (1), the
person affected shall be given a reasonable opportunity of being
heard.
(3) Where the person affected pays the fine due under sub- section
(1), within such time as may be allowed in that behalf, the Court may,
by order, revoke the declaration of forfeiture under section 105H and
thereupon such property shall stand released.
CrPC Section 105J. Certain transfers to be null and void. Where after the
making of in order under sub- section
(1) of section 105E or the issue of a notice under section 105G, any
property referred to in the said order or notice is transferred by any
mode whatsoever such transfers shall, for the purposes of the
proceedings under this Chapter, be ignored and if such property is
subsequently forfeited to the Central Government under section 105H,
then, the transfer of such property shall be deemed to be null and
void.
CrPC Section 105K. Procedure in respect of letter of request. Every letter of
requests summons or warrant, received by the Central Government from,
and every letter of request, summons or warrant, be transmitted to a
contracting State under this Chapter shall be transmitted to a
contracting State or, as the case may be, sent to the concerned Court in
India in such form and in such manner as the Central Government may be
notification specify in this behalf.
CrPC Section 105L. Application of this Chapter. The Central Government may,
by notification in the of Gazette, direct that the application of this
Chapter in relation a contracting State with which reciprocal
arrangements have been shall be subject to such conditions, exceptions
or qualifications as are specified in the said notification.]
(4) An order under this section may also be made by an Appellate Court
or by a Court when exercising its powers of revision.
CrPC Section 107. Security for keeping the peace in other cases.
(1) When an Executive Magistrate receives information that any person
is likely to commit a breach of the peace or disturb the public
tranquillity or to do any wrongful act that may probably occasion a
breach of the peace or disturb the public tranquillity and is of
opinion that there is sufficient ground for proceeding, he may, in the
manner hereinafter provided, require such person to show cause why he
should not be ordered to execute a bond, 1 with or without
sureties,] for keeping the peace for such period, not exceeding one
year, as the Magistrate thinks fit.
(2) Proceedings under this section may be taken before any Executive
Magistrate when either the place where the breach of the peace or
disturbance is apprehended is within his local jurisdiction or there
is within such jurisdiction a person who is likely to commit a breach
of the peace or disturb the public tranquillity or to do any wrongful
act as aforesaid beyond such jurisdiction.
CrPC Section 108. Security for good behaviour from persons disseminating
seditious matters.
(1) When[ an Executive Magistrate] 2
receives infor- mation that there is within his local jurisdiction any
person who, within or without such jurisdiction,-
(i) either orally or in writing or in any other manner,
intentionally disseminates or attempts to disseminate or abets the
dissemination of,-
(a) any matter the publication of which is punishable under
section 124A or section 153A or section 153B or section 295A of
the Indian Penal Code (45 of 1860 ), or
(b) any matter concerning a Judge acting or purporting to act in
the discharge of his official duties which amount to criminal
intimidation or defamation under the India Penal Code (45 of 1860
),
(ii) makes, produces, publishes or keeps for sale, imports, export
conveys, sells, lets to hire, distributes, publicly exhibits or in
any other manner puts into circulation any obscene matter such as is
referred to in section 292 of the Indian Penal Code (45 of 1860 ),
and the Magistrate is of opinion that there is sufficient ground for
proceeding, the Magistrate may, in the manner hereinafter provided,
require such person to show cause why he should not be ordered to
execute a bond, with or without sureties, for his good behaviour for
such period, not exceeding one year, as the Magistrate thinks fit.
1. Ins. by Act 45 of 1978, S. 11 (w. e. f. 18. 12. 1978 ).
2. Subs by Act by 63 of 1980, S. 2 (w. e. f. 23. 9. 1980 ).
(2) No proceedings shall be taken under this section against the
editor, proprietor, printer or publisher of any publication registered
under, and edited, printed and published in conformity with, the rules
laid down in the Press and Registration of Books Act, 1867 (25 of 1867
), with reference to any matter contained in such publication except
by the order or under tile authority of the State Government or some
officer empowered by the State Government in this behalf.
CrPC Section 109. Security for good behaviour from suspected persons. When[
an Executive Magistrate] 1 receives information that there is
within his local jurisdiction a person taking precaution to conceal his
presence and that there is reason to believe that he is doing so with a
view to committing a cognizable offence, the Magistrate may in the
manner hereinafter provided, require such person to show cause why he
should not be ordered to execute a bond, with or without sureties, for
his good behaviour for such. period, not exceeding one year, as the
Magistrate thinks fit.
CrPC Section 110. Security for good behaviour from habitual offenders. When[
an Executive Magistrate.] 1
receives information that there is within his local jurisdiction a
person who-
(a) is by habit a robber, house- breaker, thief, or forger, or,
(b) is by habit a receiver of stolen property knowing the same to have
been stolen, or
(c) habitually protects or harbours thieves, or aids in the
concealment or disposal of stolen property, or
(d) habitually commits, or attempts to commit, or abets the commission
of, the offence of kidnapping, abduction, extortion, cheating or
mischief, or any offence punishable under Chapter XII of the Indian
Penal Code (45 of 1860 ), or under section 489A, section 489B, section
489C or section 489D of that Code, or
(e) habitually commits, or attempts to commit, or abets the commission
of, offences, involving a breach of the peace, or
1. Subs. by Act 63 of 1980, S. 2 (w. e. f. 23. 9. 1980 ).
(f) habitually commits, or attempts to commit, or abets the commission
of-
(i) any offence under one or more of the following. Acts, namely:-
(a) the Drugs and Cosmetics Act, 1940 (23 of 1940 );
(b) 1 the Foreign Exchange Regulation Act, 1973 ] (46
of 1973 );
(c) the Employees’ Provident Funds 2
and Family Pension Fund] Act, 1952 ;– of 1952 .
(d) the Prevention of Food Adulteration Act, 1954 (37 of 1954 );
(e) the Essential Commodities Act, 1955 (10 of 1955 );
(f) the Untouchability (Offences) Act, 1955 (22 of 1955 );
(g) the Customs Act, 1962 or (52 of 1962 );
(ii) any offence punishable under any other law providing for the
prevention of hoarding or profiteering or of adulteration of food or
drugs or of corruption, or
(g) is so desperate and dangerous as to render his being at large
without security hazardous to the community, such Magistrate may, in
the manner hereinafter provided, require such person to show cause why
he should not be ordered to execute a bond, with sureties, for his
good behaviour for such period, not exceeding three years, as the
Magistrate thinks fit.
CrPC Section 111. Order to be made. When a Magistrate acting under section
107, section 108, section 109 or section 110, deems it necessary to
require any person to show cause under such section, he shall make an
order in writing, setting forth the substance of the information
received, the amount of the bond to be executed, the term for which it
is to be in force, and the number, character and class of sureties (if
any) required.
CrPC Section 112. Procedure in respect of person present in Court. If the
person in respect of whom such order is made is present in Court, it
shall be read over to him, or, if he so desires, the substance thereof
shall be explained to him.
999999. 1Subs. by Act 56 of 1974, s. 3 and Sch. IT, for cl. (b) (w.
e. f. 10- 1- 1975 ),
2. Ins. by s. 3 and Sch. II, ibid, (w. e. f. 10- 1- 1975 ).
CrPC Section 113. Summons or warrant in case of person not so present. If
such person is not present in Court, the Magistrate shall issue in a
summons requiring him to appear, or, when such person is in custody, a
warrant directing the officer in whose custody he is to bring him before
the Court: Provided that whenever it appears to such Magistrate, upon
the report of a police officer or upon other information (the substance
of which report or information shall be recorded by the Magistrate),
that there is reason to fear the commission of a breach of the peace,
and that such breach of the peace cannot be prevented otherwise than by
the immediate arrest of such person, the Magistrate may at any time
issue a warrant for his arrest.
CrPC Section 114. Copy of order to accompany summons or warrant. Every
summons or warrant issued under section 113 shall be accompanied by a
copy of the order made under section 111, and such copy shall be
delivered by the officer serving or executing such summons or warrant to
the person served with, or arrested under, the same.
CrPC Section 115. Power to dispense with personal attendance. The Magistrate
may, if he sees sufficient cause, dispense with the personal attendance
of any person called upon to show cause why he should not be ordered to
execute a bond for keeping the peace or for good behaviour and may
permit him to appear by a pleader.
CrPC Section 116. Inquiry as to truth of information.
(1) When an order under section Ill has been read or explained under
section 112 to a person present in Court, or when any person appears
or is brought before a Magistrate in compliance with, or in execution
of, a summons or warrant, issued under section 113, the Magistrate
shall proceed to inquire into the truth of the information upon which
action has been taken, and to take such further evidence as may appear
necessary.
(2) Such inquiry shall be made, as nearly as may be practicable, in
the manner hereinafter prescribed for conducting trial and recording
evidence in summons- cases.
(3) After the commencement, and before the completion, of the inquiry
under sub- section (1), the Magistrate, if he considers that immediate
measures are necessary for the prevention of a breach of the peace or
disturbance of the public tranquillity or the commission of any
offence or for the public safety, may, for reasons to be recorded in
writing, direct the person in respect of whom the order under section
111 has been made
to execute a bond, with or without sureties, for keeping the peace or
maintaining good behaviour until the conclusion of the inquiry, and
may detain him in custody until such bond is executed or, in default
of execution, until the inquiry is concluded: Provided that-
(a) no person against whom proceedings are not being taken under
section 108, section 109, or section 110 shall be directed to
execute a bond for maintaining good behaviour;
(b) the conditions of such bond, whether as to the amount thereof or
as to the provision of sureties or the number thereof or the
pecuniary extent of their liability, shall not be more onerous than
those specified in the order under section 111.
(4) For the purposes of this section the fact that a person is an
habitual offender or is so desperate and dangerous as to render his
being at large without security hazardous to the community may be
proved by evidence of general repute or otherwise.
(5) Where two or more persons have been associated together in the
matter under inquiry, they may be dealt with in the same or separate
inquiries as the Magistrate shall think just.
(6) The inquiry under this section shall be completed within a period
of six months from the date of its commencement, and if such inquiry
is not so completed, the proceedings under this Chapter shall, on the
expiry of the said period, stand terminated unless, for special
reasons to be recorded in writing, the Magistrate otherwise directs:
Provided that where any person has been kept in detention pending such
inquiry, the proceeding against that person, unless terminated
earlier, shall stand terminated on the expiry of a period of six
months of such detention.
(7) Where any direction is made under sub- section (6) permitting the
continuance of proceedings, the Sessions Judge may, on an application
made to him by the aggrieved party, vacate such direction if he is
satisfied that it was not based on any special reason or was perverse.
CrPC Section 117. Order to give security. If, upon such inquiry, it is proved
that it is necessary for keeping the peace or maintaining good
behaviour, as the case may be, that the person in respect of whom the
inquiry is made should execute a bond with or without sureties, the with
Magistrate shall make an order accordingly:
Provided that-
(a) no person shall be ordered to give security of a nature different
from, or of an amount larger than, or for a period longer than, that
specified in the order made under section 111;
(b) the amount of every bond shall be fixed with due regard to the
circumstances of the case and shall not be excessive;
(c) when the person in respect of whom the inquiry is made is a minor,
the bond shall be executed only by his sureties.
CrPC Section 118. Discharge of person informed against. If, on an inquiry
under section 116, it is not proved that it is necessary for keeping the
peace or maintaining good behaviour, as the case may be, that the person
in respect of whom the inquiry is made, should execute a bond, the
Magistrate shall make an entry on the record to that effect, and if such
person is in custody only for the purposes of the inquiry, shall release
him, or, if such person is not in custody, shall discharge him.
CrPC Section 119. Commencement of period for which security is required.
(1) If any person, in respect of whom an order requiring security is
made under section 106 or section 117, is, at the time such order is
made, sentenced to, or undergoing a sentence of, imprisonment, the
period for which such security is required shall commence on the
expiration of such sentence.
(2) In other cases such period shall commence on the date of such
order unless the Magistrate, for sufficient reason, fixes a later
date.
CrPC Section 120. Contents of bond. The bond to be executed by any such
person shall bind him to keep the peace or to be of good behaviour, as
the case may be, and in the latter case the commission or attempt to
commit, or the abetment of, any offence punishable with imprisonment,
wherever it may be committed, is a breach of the bond.
CrPC Section 121. Power to reject sureties.
(1) A Magistrate may refuse to accept any surety offered, or may
reject any surety previously accepted by him or his predecessor under
this Chapter on the ground that such surety is an unfit person for the
purposes of the bond: Provided that, before so refusing to accept or
rejecting any such surety, he shall either himself hold an inquiry on
oath into the fitness of the surety, or cause such inquiry to be held
and a report to be made thereon by a Magistrate subordinate to him.
(2) Such Magistrate shall, before holding the inquiry, give reasonable
notice to the surety and to the person by whom the surety was offered
and shall, in making the inquiry, record the substance of the evidence
adduced before him.
(3) If the Magistrate is satisfied, after considering the evidence so
adduced either before him or before a Magistrate deputed under sub
section (1), and the report of such Magistrate (if any), that the
surety is an unfit person for the purposes of the bond, he shall make
an order refusing to accept or rejecting, as the case may be, such
surety and recording his reasons for so doing: Provided that, before
making an order rejecting any surety who has previously been accepted,
the Magistrate shall issue his summons or warrant, as he thinks fit,
and cause the person for whom the surety is bound to appear or to be
brought before him.
CrPC Section 122. Imprisonment in default of security.
(1) (a) If any person ordered to give security under section 106 or
section 117 does not give such security on or before the date on which
the period for Which such security is to be given commences, the
shall, except in the case next hereinafter mentioned, be committed to
prison, or, if he is already in prison, be detained in prison until
such period expires or until within such period- he gives the security
to the Court or Magistrate who made the order requiring it.
(b) If any person after having executed a bond without sureties for
keeping the peace in pursuance of an order of a Magistrate under
section 117, is proved, to the satisfaction of such Magistrate or
his successor- in- office, to have committed breach of the bond,
such Magistrate or successor- in– office may, after recording the
grounds of such proof, order that the person be arrested and
detained in prison until the expiry of the period of the bond and
such order shall be without prejudice to any other punishment or
forfeiture to which the said person may be liable in accordance with
law.
(2) When such person has been ordered by a Magistrate to give security
for a period exceeding one year, such Magistrate shall, if such person
does not give such security as aforesaid, issue a warrant directing
him to be detained in prison pending the orders of the Sessions Judge
and the proceedings shall be laid, as soon as conveniently may be,
before such Court.
(3) Such Court, after examining such proceedings and requiring from
the Magistrate any further information or evidence which it thinks
necessary, and after giving the concerned person a reasonable
opportunity of being heard, may pass such order on the case as it
thinks fit: Provided that the period (if any) for which any person is
imprisoned for failure to give security shall not exceed three years.
(4) If security has been required in the course of the same
proceeding’ from two or more persons in respect of any one of whom the
proceedings are referred to the Sessions Judge under sub- section (2),
such reference shall also include the case of any other of such
persons who has been ordered to give security, and the provisions of
sub- sections (2) and (3) shall, in that event, apply to the case of
such other person also, except that the period (if any) for which he
may be imprisoned, shall not exceed the period for which he was
ordered to give security.
(5) A Sessions Judge may in his discretion transfer any proceedings
laid before him under sub- section (2) or sub- section (4) to an
Additional Sessions Judge or Assistant Sessions Judge and upon such
transfer, such Additional Sessions Judge or Assistant Sessions Judge
may exercise the powers of a Sessions Judge under this section in
respect of such proceedings.
(6) If the security is tendered to the officer in charge of the jail,
he shall forthwith refer the matter to the Court or Magistrate who
made the order, and shall await the orders of such Court or
Magistrate.
(7) Imprisonment for failure to give security for keeping the peace
shall be simple.
(8) Imprisonment for failure to give security for good behaviour
shall, where the proceedings have been taken under section 108, be
simple, and, where the proceedings have been taken under section 109
or section 110, be rigorous or simple as the Court or Magistrate in
each case directs.
CrPC Section 123. Power to release persons imprisoned for failing to give
security.
(1) Whenever 1 the District Magistrate in the case of an
order passed by an Executive Magistrate under section 117, or the
Chief Judicial Magistrate in any other case] is of opinion that any
person imprisoned for failing to give security under this Chapter may
be released without, hazard to the community or to any other person,
he may order such person to be discharged.
1. Subs. by Act 45 of 1978, s. 12, for” the Chief Judicial
Magistrate” (w. e. f. 18- 12- 1978 ).
(2) Whenever any person has been imprisoned for failing to give
security under this Chapter, the High Court or Court of Session, or,
where the order was made by any other Court, the 1 District
Magistrate, in the case of an order passed by an Executive Magistrate
under section 117, or the Chief Judicial Magistrate in any other
case], may make an order reducing the amount of the security or the
number of sureties or the time for which security has been required.
(3) An order under sub- section (1) may direct the discharge of such
person either without conditions or upon any conditions which such
person accepts: Provided that any condition imposed shall cease to be
operative when the period for which such person was ordered to give
security has expired.
(4) The State Government may prescribe the conditions upon which a
conditional discharge may be made.
(5) If any condition upon which any person has been discharged is, in
the opinion of the 1 District Magistrate, in the case of an
order passed by an Executive Magistrate under section 117, or the
Chief Judicial Magistrate in any other case] by whom the order of
discharge was made or of his successor, not fulfilled, he may cancel
the same.
(6) When a conditional order of discharge has been cancelled under
sub- section (5), such person may be arrested by any police officer
without warrant, and shall thereupon be produced before the
1
District Magistrate, in the case of an order passed by an Executive
Magistrate under section 117, or the Chief Judicial Magistrate in any
other case].
(7) such person gives security in accordance with the terms of the
original order for the unexpired, portion of the term for which he was
in the first instance committed or ordered to be detained (such
portion being deemed to be a period equal to the period between the
date of the breach of the conditions of discharge and the date on
which, except for such conditional discharge, he would have been
entitled to release), the 1
District Magistrate, in the case of an order passed by an Executive
Magistrate under section 117, or the Chief Judicial Magistrate in any
other case] may remand such person to prison to undergo such unexpired
portion.
(8) A person remanded to prison under sub- section (7) shall, Subject
to the provisions of section 122, be released at any time on giving
security in accordance with the terms of the original order for the
unexpired
portion aforesaid to the Court or Magistrate by whom such order was
made, or to its or his successor.
1. Subs. by Act 45 of 1978, s. 12, for” Chief Judicial Magistrate”
(w. e. f. 18- 12- 1978 ).
(9) The High Court or Court of Session may at any time, for sufficient
reasons to be recorded in writing, cancel any bond for keeping the
peace or for good behaviour executed under this Chapter by any order
made by and the 1 District Magistrate, in the case of an
order passed by an Executive Magistrate under section 117, or the
Chief Judicial Magistrate in any other case] may make such
cancellation where such bond was executed under his order or under the
order of: any other Court in his district.
(10) Any surety for the peaceable conduct or good behaviour of another
person ordered to execute a bond under this Chapter may at any time
apply to the Court making such order to cancel the bond and on such
application being made, the Court shall issue a summons or warrant, as
it thinks fit, requiring the person for whom such surety is bound to
appear or to be brought before it.
CrPC Section 124. Security for unexpired period of bond.
(1) When a person for whose appearance a summons or warrant has been
issued under the proviso to sub- section (3) of section 121 or under
sub- section (10) of section 123, appears or is brought before the
Magistrate or Court, the Magistrate or Court shall cancel the bond
executed by such person and shall order such person to give, for the
unexpired portion of the term of such bond, fresh security of the same
description as the original security.
(2) Every such order shall, for the purposes of section 120 to 123
(both inclusive), be deemed to be an order made under section 106 or
section 117, as the case may be. CHAP ORDER FOR MAINTENANCE OF WIVES,
CHILDREN AND PARENTS CHAPTER IX ORDER FOR MAINTENANCE OF WIVES,
CHILDREN AND PARENTS
CrPC Section 125. Order for maintenance of wives, children and parents.
(1) If any person having sufficient means neglects or refuses to
maintain-
(a) his wife, unable to maintain herself, or
(b) his legitimate or illegitimate minor child, whether married or
not, unable to maintain itself, or
1. Subs. by Act 45 of 1978, s. 12, for” Chief Judicial
Magistrate” (w. e. f, 18- 12- 1978 ).
(c) his legitimate or illegitimate child (not being a married
daughter) who has attained majority, where such child is, by reason
of any physical or mental abnormality or injury unable to maintain
itself, or
(d) his father or mother, unable to maintain himself or herself, a
Magistrate of the first class may, upon proof of such neglect or
refusal, order such person to make a monthly allowance for the
maintenance of his wife or such child, father or mother, at such
monthly rate not exceeding five hundred rupees in the whole, as such
Magistrate thinks fit, and to pay the same to such person as the
Magistrate may from time to time direct: Provided that the
Magistrate may order the father of a minor female child referred to
in clause (b) to make such allowance, until she attains her
majority, if the Magistrate is satisfied that the husband of such
minor female child, if married, is not possessed of sufficient
means. Explanation.- For the purposes of this Chapter,-
(a) “minor” means a person who, under the provisions of the Indian
Majority Act, 1875 (9 of 1875 ); is deemed not to have attained his
majority;
(b) “wife” includes a woman who has been divorced by, or has
obtained a divorce from, her husband and has not remarried.
(2) Such allowance shall be payable from the date of the order, or, if
so ordered, from the date of the application for maintenance.
(3) If any person so ordered fails without sufficient cause to comply
with the order, any such Magistrate may, for every breach of the
order, issue a warrant for levying the amount due in the manner
provided for levying fines, and may sentence such person, for the
whole or any part of each month’ s allowances remaining unpaid after
the execution of the warrant, to imprisonment for a term which may
extend to one month or until payment if sooner made: Provided that no
warrant shall be issued for the recovery of any amount due under this
section unless application be made to the Court to levy such amount
within a period of one year from the date on which it became due:
Provided further that if such person offers to maintain his wife on
condition of her living with him, and she refuses to live with him,
such
Magistrate may consider any grounds of refusal stated by her, and may
make an order under this section notwithstanding such offer, if he is
satisfied that there is just ground for so doing. Explanation.- If a
husband has contracted marriage with another woman or keeps a
mistress, it shall be considered to be just ground for his wife’ s
refusal to live with him.
(4) No Wife shall be entitled to receive an allowance from her husband
under this section if she is living in adultery, or if, without any
sufficient reason, she refuses to live with her husband, or if they
are living separately by mutual consent.
(5) On proof that any wife in whose favour an order has been made
under this section is living in adultery, or that without sufficient
reason she refuses to live with her husband, or that they are living
separately by mutual consent, the Magistrate shall cancel the order.
CrPC Section 126. Procedure.
(1) Proceedings under section 125 may be taken against any person in
any district-
(a) where he is, or
(b) where he or his wife, resides, or
(c) where he last resided with his wife, or as the case may be, with
the mother of the illegitimate child.
(2) All evidence in such proceedings shall be taken in the presence of
the person against whom an order for payment of maintenance is proceed
to be made, or, when his personal attendance is dispensed with, in the
presence of his pleader, and shall be recorded in the manner
prescribed for summons- cases: Provided that if the Magistrate is
satisfied that the person against whom an order for payment of
maintenance is proposed to be made is wilfully avoiding service, or
wilfully neglecting to attend the Court, the Magistrate may proceed to
hear and determine the case ex parte and any order so made may be set
aside for good cause shown on an application made within three months
from the date thereof subject to such terms including terms at to
payment of costs to the opposite party as the Magistrate may think
just and proper.
(3) The Court in dealing with applications under section 125 shall
have power to make such order as to costs as may be just.
CrPC Section 127. Alteration in allowance.
(1) On proof of a change in the circumstances of any person,
receiving, under section 125 a monthly allowance, or ordered under the
same section to pay a monthly allowance to his wife, child, father or
mother, as case may be, the Magistrate may make such alteration in the
allowance he thinks fit: Provided that if he increases the allowance,
the monthly rate of five hundred rupees in the whole shall not be
exceeded.
(2) Where it appears to the Magistrate that, in consequence of any
decision of a competent Civil Court, any order made under section 125
should be cancelled or varied, he shall cancel the order or, as the
case may be, vary the same accordingly.
(3) Where any order has been made under section 125 in favour of a
woman who has been divorced by, or has obtained a divorce from, her
husband, the Magistrate shall, if he is satisfied that-
(a) the woman has, after the date of such divorce, remarried, cancel
such order as from the date of her remarriage;
(b) the woman has been divorced by her husband and that she has
received, whether before or after the date of the said order, the
whole of the sum which, under any customary or personal law
applicable to the parties, was payable on such divorce, cancel such
order,-
(i) in the case where, such sum was paid before such order, from
the date on Which such order was made,
(ii) in any other case, from the date of expiry of the period, if
any, for which maintenance has been actually paid by the husband
by the woman;
(c) the woman has obtained a divorce from her husband and that she
had voluntarily surrendered her rights to maintenance after her
divorce, cancel the order from the date thereof.
(4) At the time of making any decree for the recovery of any
maintenance or dowry by any person, to whom a monthly allowance has
been ordered to be paid under section 125, the Civil Court shall take
into account the sum which has been paid to, or recovered by, such
person as monthly allowance in pursuance of the said order.
CrPC Section 128. Enforcement of order of maintenance. A copy of the order of
maintenance shall be given without payment to the person in whose favour
it is made, or to his guardian, if any or to the person to whom the
allowance is to be paid; and such
order may be enforced by any Magistrate in any place where the person
against whom it is made may be, on such Magistrate being satisfied as to
the identity of the parties and the non- payment of the allowance due.
CHAP MAINTENANCE OF PUBLIC ORDER AND TRANQUILLITY, CHAPTER X MAINTENANCE
OF PUBLIC ORDER AND TRANQUILLITY, A.- Unlawful assemblies
CrPC Section 129. Dispersal of assembly by use of civil force.
(1) Any executive Magistrate or officer in charge of a police station
or, in the absence of such officer in charge, any police officer, not
below the rank of a sub- inspector, may command any unlawful assembly,
or any assembly of five or more persons likely to cause a disturbance
of the public peace, to disperse; and it shall thereupon be the duty
of the members of such assembly to disperse accordingly.
(2) If, upon being so commanded, any such assembly does not disperse,
or if, without being so commanded, it conducts itself in such a manner
as to show a determination not to disperse, any Executive Magistrate
or police officer referred to in sub- section (1), may proceed to
disperse such assembly by force, and may require the assistance of any
male person, not being an officer or member of the armed forces and
acting as such, for the purpose of dispersing such assembly, and, if
necessary, arresting and confining the persons who form part of it, in
order to disperse such assembly or that they may be punished according
to law.
CrPC Section 130. Use of armed forces to disperse assembly.
(1) If any such assembly cannot be otherwise dispersed, and if it is
necessary for the public security that it should be dispersed, the
Executive Magistrate of the highest rank who is present may cause it
to be dispersed by the armed forces.
(2) Such Magistrate may require any officer in command of any group of
persons belonging to the armed forces to disperse the assembly with
the help of the armed forces under his command, and to arrest and
confine such persons forming part of it as the Magistrate may direct,
or as it may be necessary to arrest and confine in order to disperse
the assembly or to have them punished according to law.
(3) Every such officer of the armed forces shall obey such requisition
in such manner as he thinks fit, but in so doing he shall use as
little force,
and do as little injury to person and property, as may be consistent
with dispersing the assembly and arresting and detaining such persons.
CrPC Section 131. Power of certain armed force officers to disperse assembly.
When the public security is manifestly endangered by any such assembly
and no Executive Magistrate can be communicated with, any commissioned
or gazetted officer of the armed forces may disperse such assembly with
the help of the armed forces under his command, and may arrest and
confine any persons forming part of it, in order to disperse such
assembly or that they may be punished according to law; but if, while he
is acting under this section, it becomes practicable for him to
communicate with an Executive Magistrate, he shall do so, and shall
thenceforward obey the instructions of the Magistrate, as to whether he
shall or shall not continue such action.
CrPC Section 132. Protection against prosecution for acts done under
preceding sections.
(1) No prosecution against any person for any act purporting to be
done under section 129, section 130 or section 131 shall be instituted
in any Criminal Court except-
(a) with the sanction of the Central Government where such person is
an officer or member of the armed forces;
(b) with the sanction of the State Government in any other case.
(2) (a) No Executive Magistrate or police officer acting under any of
the said sections in good faith;
(b) no person doing any act in good faith in compliance with a
requisition under section 129 or section 130;
(c) no officer of the armed forces acting under section 131 in good
faith;
(d) no member of the armed forces doing any act in obedience to any
order which he was bound to obey; shall be deemed to have thereby
committed an offence.
(3) In this section and in the preceding sections of this Chapter,-
(a) the expression” armed forces” means the military, naval and air
forces, operating as land forces and includes any other Armed Forces
of the Union so operating;
(b) “officer”, in relation to the armed forces, means a person
commissioned, gazetted or in pay as an officer of the armed forces
and includes a junior commissioned officer, a warrant
officer, a petty officer, a non- commissioned officer and a non-
gazetted officer;
(c) “member”, in relation to the armed forces, means a person in the
armed forces other than an officer. B.- Public nuisances
CrPC Section 133. Conditional order for removal of nuisance.
(1) Whenever a District Magistrate or a Sub- divisional Magistrate or
any other Executive Magistrate specially empowered in this of behalf
by the State Government, on receiving the report of a police officer
or other information and on taking such evidence (if any) as he thinks
fit, considers-
(a) that any unlawful obstruction or nuisance should be removed from
any public place or from any way, river or channel which is or may
be lawfully used by the public; or
(b) that the conduct of any trade or occupation, or the keeping of
any goods or merchandise, is injurious to the health or physical
comfort of the community, and that in consequence such trade or
occupation should be prohibited or regulated or such goods or
merchandise should be removed or the keeping thereof regulated; or
(c) that the construction of any building, or, the disposal of any
substance, as is likely to occasion configuration or explosion,
should be prevented or stopped; or
(d) that any building, tent or structure, or any tree is in such a
condition that it is likely to fall and thereby cause injury to
persons living or carrying on business in the neighbourhood or
passing by, and that in consequence the removal, repair or support
of such building, tent or structure, or the removal or support of
such tree, is necessary; or
(e) that any tank, well or excavation adjacent to any such way or
public place should be fenced in such manner as to prevent danger
arising to the public; or
(f) that any dangerous animal should be destroyed, confined or
otherwise disposed of, such Magistrate may make a conditional order
requiring the person causing such obstruction or nuisance, or
carrying on such trade or occupa-
tion, or keeping any such goods or merchandise, or owning,
possessing or controlling such building, tent, structure, substance,
tank, well or excavation, or owning or possessing such animal or
tree, within a time to be fixed in the order-
(i) to remove such obstruction or nuisance; or
(ii) to desist from carrying on, or to remove or regulate in such
manner as may be directed, such trade or occupation, or to remove
such goods or merchandise, or to regulate the keeping thereof in
such manner as may be directed; or
(iii) to prevent or stop the construction of such building, or to
alter the disposal of such substance; or
(iv) to remove, repair or support such building, tent or
structure, or to remove or support such trees; or
(v) to fence such tank, well or excavation; or
(vi) to destroy, confine or dispose of such dangerous animal in
the manner provided in the said order; or, if he objects so to do,
to appear before himself or some other Executive Magistrate
subordinate to him at a time and place to be fixed by the Order,
and show cause, in the manner hereinafter provided, why the order
should not be made absolute.
(2) No order duly made by a Magistrate under this section shall be
called in question in any Civil Court. Explanation- A” public place”
includes also property belonging to the State, camping grounds and
grounds left unoccupied for sanitary or recreative purposes.
CrPC Section 134. Service or notification of order.
(1) The order shall, if practicable, be served on the person against
whom it is made, in the manner herein provided for service of a
summons.
(2) If such order cannot, be so served, it shall be notified by
proclamation, published in such manner as the State Government may, by
rules, direct, and a copy thereof shall be struck up at such place or
places as may be fittest for conveying the Information to such person,
CrPC Section 135. Person to whom addressed to obey or show cause. The person
against whom such order is made shall-
(a) perform, within the time and in the manner specified in the order,
the act directed thereby; or
(b) appear in accordance with such order and show cause against the
same.
CrPC Section 136. Consequences of his failing to do so. If such person does
not perform such act or appear and show cause, he shall be liable to the
penalty prescribed in that behalf in section 188 of the Indian Penal
Code, and the order shall be made absolute.
CrPC Section 137. Procedure where existence of public right is denied.
(1) Where an order is made under section 133 for the purpose of
preventing obstruction, nuisance or danger to the public in the use of
any way, river, channel or place, the Magistrate shall, on the
appearance before him of the person against whom the order was made,
question him as to whether he denies the existence of any public right
in respect of the way, river, channel or place, and if he does so, the
Magistrate shall, before proceeding under section 138, inquire into
the matter.
(2) If in such inquiry the Magistrate finds that there is any reliable
evidence in support of such denial, he shall stay the proceedings
until the matter of the existence of such right has been decided by a
competent Court; and, if he finds that there is no such evidence, he
shall proceed as laid down in section 138.
(3) A person who has, on being questioned by the Magistrate under sub-
section (1), failed to deny the existence of a public right of the
nature therein referred to, or who, having made such denial, has
failed to adduce reliable evidence in support thereof, shall not in
the subsequent proceedings be permitted to make any such denial.
CrPC Section 138. Procedure where he appears to show cause.
(1) If the person against whom an order under section 133 is made
appears and shows cause against the order, the Magistrate shall take
evidence in the matter as in a summons- case.
(2) If the Magistrate is satisfied that the order, either as
originally made or subject to such modification as he considers
necessary, is reasonable and proper, the order shall be made absolute
without modification or, as the case may be, with such modification.
(3) If the Magistrate is not so satisfied, no further proceedings
shall be taken in the case.
CrPC Section 139. Power of Magistrate to direct local investigation and
examination of an expert. The Magistrate may, for the purposes of an
inquiry under section 137 or section 138-
(a) direct a local investigation to be made by such person as he
thinks fit; or
(b) summon and examine an expert.
CrPC Section 140. Power of Magistrate to furnish written instructions, etc.
(1) Where the Magistrate directs a local investigation by any person
under section 139, the Magistrate may-
(a) furnish such person with such written instructions as may seem
necessary for his guidance;
(b) declare by whom the whole or any part of the necessary expenses
of the local investigation shall be paid.
(2) The report of such person may be read as evidence in the case.
(3) Where the Magistrate summons and examines an expert under section
139, the Magistrate may direct by whom the costs of such summoning and
examination shall be paid.
CrPC Section 141. Procedure on order being made absolute and consequences of
disobedience.
(1) When an order has been made absolute under section 136 or section
138, the Magistrate shall give notice of the same to the person
against whom the order was made, and shall further require him to
perform the act directed by the order within a time to be fixed in the
notice, and inform him that, in case of disobedience, he will be
liable to the penalty provided by section 188 of the Indian Penal Code
(45 of 1860 ).
(2) If such act is not performed within the time fixed, the Magistrate
may cause it to be performed, and may recover the costs of performing
it, either by the sale of any building, goods or other property
removed by his order, or by the distress and sale of any other movable
property of such person within or without such Magistrate’ s local
jurisdiction and if such other property is without such jurisdiction,
the order shall authorise its attachment and sale when endorsed by the
Magistrate within whose local jurisdiction the property to be attached
is found.
(3) No suit shall lie in respect of anything done in good faith under
this section.
CrPC Section 142. Injunction pending inquiry.
(1) If a Magistrate making an order under section 133 considers that
immediate measures should be taken to prevent imminent danger or
injury of a serious kind to the public, he may issue such an
injunction to
the person against whom the order was made, as is required to obviate
or prevent such danger or injury pending the determination of the
matter.
(2) In default of such person forthwith obeying such injunction, the
Magistrate may himself use, or cause to be used, such means as he
thinks fit to obviate such danger or to prevent such injury.
(3) No suit shall lie in respect of anything done in good faith by a
Magistrate under this section.
CrPC Section 143. Magistrate may prohibit repetition or connuance of public
nuisance,. A District Magistrate or Sub- divisional Magistrate, or any
other Executive Magistrate empowered by the State Government or the
District Magistrate in this behalf, may order any person not to repeat
or continue a public nuisance, as defined in the Indian Penal Code (45
of 1860 ), or any special or local law. C.- Urgent cases of nuisance or
apprehended danger
CrPC Section 144. Power to issue order in urgent cases of nuisance of
apprehended danger.
(1) In cases where, in the opinion of a District Magistrate, a Sub-
divisional Magistrate or any other Executive Magistrate specially
empowered by the State Government in this behalf, there is sufficient
ground for proceeding under this section and immediate prevention or
speedy remedy is desirable, such Magistrate may, by a written order
stating the material facts of the case and served in the manner
provided by section 134, direct any person to abstain from a certain
act or to take certain order with respect to certain property in his
possession or under his management, if such Magistrate considers that
such direction is likely to prevent, or tends to prevent, obstruction,
annoyance or injury to any person lawfully employed, or danger to
human life, health or safety, or a disturbance of the public
tranquility, or a riot, of an affray.
(2) An order under this section may, in cases of emergency or in cases
where the circumstances do not admit of the serving in due time of a
notice upon the person against whom the order is directed, be passed
ex parte.
(3) An order under this section may be directed to a particular
individual, or to persons residing in a particular place or area, or
to the public generally when frequenting or visiting a particular
place or area.
(4) No order under this section shall remain in force for more than
two months from the making thereof: Provided that, if the State
Government considers it necessary so to do for preventing danger to
human life, health or safety or for preventing a riot or any affray,
it may, by notification, direct that an order made by a Magistrate
under this section shall remain in force for such further period not
exceeding six months from the date on which the order made by the
Magistrate would have, but for such order, expired, as it may specify
in the said notification.
(5) Any Magistrate may, either on his own motion or on the application
of any person aggrieved, rescind or alter any order made under this
section, by himself or any Magistrate subordinate to him or by his
predecessor- in- office.
(6) The State Government may, either on its own motion or on the
application of any person aggrieved, rescind or alter any order made
by it under the proviso to sub- section (4).
(7) Where an application under sub- section (5) or sub- section (6) is
received, the Magistrate, or the State Government, as the case may be,
shall afford to the applicant an early opportunity of appearing before
him or it, either in person or by pleader and showing cause against
the order; and if the Magistrate or the State Government, as the case
may be, rejects the application wholly or in part, he or it shall
record in writing the reasons for so doing. D.- Disputes as to
immovable property
CrPC Section 145. Procedure where dispute concerning land or water is likely
to cause breach of peace.
(1) Whenever an Executive Magistrate is satisfied from a report of a
police officer or upon other information that a dispute likely to
cause a breach of the peace exists concerning any land or water or the
boundaries thereof, within his local jurisdiction, he shall make an
order in writing, stating the grounds of his being so satisfied, and
requiring the parties concerned in such dispute to attend his Court in
person or by pleader, on a specified date and time, and to put in
written statements of their respective claims as respects the fact of
actual possession of the subject of dispute.
(2) For the purposes of this section, the expression” land or water”
includes buildings, markets, fisheries, crops or other produce of
land, and the rents or profits of any such property.
(3) A copy of the order shall be served in the manner provided by this
Code for the service of a summons upon such person or persons as the
Magistrate may direct, and at least one copy shall be published by
being affixed to some conspicuous place at or near the subject of
dispute,
(4) The Magistrate shall then, without, reference to the merits or the
claims of any of the parties to a right to possess the subject of
dispute, peruse the statements so put in, hear the parties, receive
all such evidence as may be produced by them, take such further
evidence, if any, as he thinks necessary, and, if possible, decide
whether any and which of the parties was, at the date of the order
made by him under sub- section (1), in possession of the subject of
dispute: Provided that if it appears to the Magistrate that any party
has been forcibly and wrongfully dispossessed within two months next
before the date on which the report of a police officer or other
information was received by the Magistrate, or after that date and
before the date of his order under sub- section (1), he may treat the
party so dispossessed as if that party had been in possession on the
date of his order under sub- section (1).
(5) Nothing in this section’ shall preclude any party so required to
attend, or any other person interested, from showing that no such
dispute as aforesaid exists or has existed; and in such case the
Magistrate shall cancel his said order, and all further proceedings
thereon shall be stayed, but, subject to such cancellation, the order
of the Magistrate under subsection (1) shall be final.
(6) (a) If the Magistrate decides that one of the parties was, or
should under the proviso to sub- section (4) be treated as being, in
such possession of the said subject, he shall issue an order declaring
such party to be entitled to possession thereof until evicted
therefrom in due course of law, and forbidding all disturbance of such
possession until such eviction; and when he proceeds under the proviso
to sub- section (4), may restore to possession the party forcibly and
wrongfully dispossessed.
(b) The order made under this sub- section shall be served and
published in the manner laid down in sub- section (3).
(7) When any party to any such proceeding dies, the Magistrate may
cause the legal representative of the deceased party to be made a
party to the proceeding and shall thereupon continue the inquiry, and
if any question arises as to who the legal representative of a
deceased party for the purposes of such proceeding is, all persons
claiming to be representatives of the deceased party shall be made
parties thereto.
(8) If the Magistrate is of opinion that any crop or other produce of
the property, the subject of dispute in a proceeding under this
section pending before him, is subject to speedy and natural decay, he
may make an order for the proper custody or sale of. such property,
and, upon the completion of the inquiry, shall make such order for the
disposal of such property, or the sale- proceeds thereof, as he thinks
fit.
(9) The Magistrate may, if he thinks fit, at any stage of the
proceedings under this section, on the application of either party,
issue a summons to any witness directing him to attend or to produce
any document or thing.
(10) Nothing in this section shall be deemed to be in derogation of
the powers of the Magistrate to proceed under section 107.
CrPC Section 146. Power to attach subject of dispute and to appoint receiver.
(1) If the Magistrate at any time after making the order under sub-
section (1) of section 145 considers the case to be one of emergency,
or if he decides that none of the parties was then in such possession
as is referred to in section 145, or if he is unable to satisfy
himself as to which of them was then in such possession of the subject
of dispute, he may attach the subject of dispute until a competent
Court has determined the rights of the parties thereto with regard to
the person entitled to the possession thereof: Provided that such
Magistrate may withdraw the attachment at any time if he is satisfied
that there is no longer any likelihood of breach of the peace with
regard to the subject of dispute.
(2) When the Magistrate attaches the subject of dispute, he may, if no
receiver in relation to such subject of dispute has been appointed by
any Civil Court, make such arrangements as he considers proper for
looking after the property or if he thinks fit, appoint a receiver
thereof, who shall have, subject to the control of the Magistrate, all
the powers of a receiver appointed under the Code of Civil Procedure,
1908 (5 of 1908 );
Provided that in the event of a receiver being subsequently appointed
in relation to the subject of dispute by any Civil Court, the
Magistrate-
(a) shall order the receiver appointed by him to hand over the
possession of the subject of dispute to the receiver appointed by
the Civil Court and shall thereafter discharge the receiver
appointed by him;
(b) may make such other incidental or consequential orders as may be
just.
CrPC Section 147. Dispute concerning right of use of land or water.
(1) Whenever an Executive Magistrate is satisfied from the report of a
police officer or upon other information, that a dispute likely to
cause a breach of the peace exists regarding any alleged right of user
of any land or water within his local jurisdiction, whether such right
be claimed as an easement or otherwise, he shall make an order in
writing, stating the grounds of his being so satisfied and requiring
the parties concerned in such dispute to attend his Court in person or
by pleader on a specified date and time and to put in written
statements of their respective claims. Explanation.- The expression”
land or water” has the meaning given to it in sub- section (2) of
section 145.
(2) The Magistrate shall then peruse the statements so put in, hear
the parties, receive all such, evidence as may be produced by them
respectively, consider the effect of such evidence, take such further
evidence, if any, as he thinks necessary and, if possible, decide
whether such right exists; and the provisions of section 145 shall, so
far as may be, apply in the case of such inquiry.
(3) If it appears to such Magistrate that such rights exist, he may
make an order prohibiting any interference with the exercise of such
right, including, in a proper case, an order for the removal of any
obstruction in the exercise of any such right: Provided that no such
order shall be made where the right is exercisable at all times of the
year, unless such right has been exercised within three months next
before the receipt under sub- section (1) of the report of a police
officer or other information leading to the institution of the
inquiry, or where the right is exercisable only at particular seasons
or on particular occasions, unless the right has been exercised during
the last of such a seasons or on the last of such occasions before
such receipt.
(4) When in any proceedings commenced under sub- section (1) of
section 145 the Magistrate finds that the dispute is as regards an
alleged right of user of land or water, he may, after recording his
reasons, continue with the proceedings as if they had been commenced
under subsection (1); and when in any proceedings commenced under sub-
section (1) the Magistrate finds that the dispute should be dealt with
under section 145, he may, after recording his reasons, continue with
the proceedings as if they had been commenced under sub- section (1)
of section 145.
CrPC Section 148. Local inquiry.
(1) Whenever a local inquiry is necessary for the purposes of section
145, section 146 or section 147, a District Magistrate or Sub-
divisional Magistrate may depute any Magistrate subordinate to him to
make the inquiry, and may furnish him with such written instructions
as may seem necessary for his guidance, and may declare by whom the
whole or any part of the necessary expenses of the inquiry shall be
paid.
(2) The report of the person so deputed may be read as evidence in the
case.
(3) When any costs have been incurred by any party to a proceeding
under section 145, section 146, or section 147, the Magistrate passing
a decision may direct by whom such costs shall be paid, whether by
such party or by any other party to the proceeding, and whether in
whole or in part or proportion and such costs may include any expenses
incurred in respect of witnesses and of pleaders’ fees, which the
Court may consider reasonable. CHAP PREVENTIVE ACTION OF THE POLICE
CHAPTER XI PREVENTIVE ACTION OF THE POLICE
CrPC Section 149. Police to prevent cognizable offences. Every police officer
may interpose for the purpose of preventing, and shall, to the best of
his ability, prevent, the commission of any cognizable offence.
CrPC Section 150. Information of design to commit cognizable offences. Every
police officer receiving information of a design to commit any
cognizable offence shall communicate such information to the police
officer to whom he is subordinate, and to any other officer whose duty
it is to prevent or take cognizance of the commission of any such
offence.
CrPC Section 151. Arrest to prevent the commission of cognizable offences.
(1) A police officer knowing of a design to commit any cognizable
offence may arrest, without orders from a Magistrate and without a
warrant, the person so designing, if it appears to such officer that
the commission of the offence cannot be otherwise prevented.
(2) No person arrested under sub- section (1) shall be detained in
custody for a period exceeding twenty- four hours from the time of his
arrest unless his further detention is required or authorised under
any other provisions of this Code or of any other law for the time
being in force.
CrPC Section 152. Prevention of injury to public property. A police officer
may of his own authority interpose to prevent any injury attempted to be
committed in his view to any public property, movable or immovable, or
the removal or injury of any public land mark or buoy or other mark used
for navigation.
CrPC Section 153. Inspection of weights and measures.
(1) Any officer in charge of a police station may, without a warrant,
enter any place within the limits of such station for the purpose of
inspecting or searching for any weights or measures or instruments for
weighing, used or kept therein, whenever he has reason to believe that
there are in such place any weights, measures or instruments for
weighing which are false.
(2) If he finds in such place any weights, measures or instruments for
weighing which are false, he may seize the same, and shall forthwith
give information of such seizure to a Magistrate having jurisdiction.
CHAP INFORMATION TO THE POLICE AND THEIR POWERS TO INVESTIGATE CHAPTER
XII INFORMATION TO THE POLICE AND THEIR POWERS TO INVESTIGATE
CrPC Section 154. Information in cognizable cases.
(1) Every information relating to the commission of a cognizable
offence, if given orally to an officer in charge of a police station,
shall be reduced to writing by him or under his direction, and be read
Over to the informant; and every such information, whether given in
writing or reduced to writing as aforesaid, shall be signed by the
person giving it, and the substance thereof shall be entered in a book
to be kept by such officer in such form as the State Government may
prescribe in this behalf.
(2) A copy of the information as recorded under sub- section (1) shall
be given forthwith, free of cost, to the informant.
(3) Any person aggrieved by a refusal on the part of an officer in
charge of a police station to record the information referred to in
subsection (1) may send the substance of such information, in writing
and by post, to the Superintendent of Police concerned who, if
satisfied that such information discloses the commission of a
cognizable offence, shall either investigate the case himself or
direct an investigation to be made by any police officer subordinate
to him, in the manner provided by this Code, and such officer shall
have all the powers of an officer in charge of the police station in
relation to that offence.
CrPC Section 155. Information as to non- cognizable cases and investigation
of such cases.
(1) When information is given to an officer in charge of a police
station of the commission within the limits of such station of a non-
cognizable offence, he shall enter or cause to be entered the
substance of the information in a book to be kept by such officer in
such form as the State Government may prescribe in this behalf, and
refer the informant to the Magistrate.
(2) No police officer shall investigate a non- cognizable case without
the order of a Magistrate having power to try such case or commit the
case for trial.
(3) Any police officer receiving such order may exercise the same
powers in respect of the investigation (except the power to arrest
without warrant) as an officer in charge of a police station may
exercise in a cognizable case.
(4) Where a case relates to two or more offences of which at least one
is cognizable, the case shall be deemed to be a cognizable case,
notwithstanding that the other offences are non- cognizable.
CrPC Section 156. Police officer’ s power to investigate cognizable case.
(1) Any officer in charge of a police station may, without the order
of a Magistrate, investigate any cognizable case which a Court having
jurisdiction over the local area within the limits of such station
would have power to inquire into or try under the provisions of
Chapter XIII.
(2) No proceeding of a police officer in any such case shall at any
stage be called in question on the ground that the case was one which
such officer was not empowered under this section to investigate.
(3) Any Magistrate empowered under section 190 may order such an
investigation as above- mentioned.
CrPC Section 157. Procedure for investigation preliminary inquiry.
(1) If, from information received or otherwise, an officer in charge
of a police station has reason to suspect the commission of an offence
which he is empowered under section 156 to investigate, he shall
forthwith send a report of the same to a Magistrate empowered to take
cognizance of such offence upon a police report and shall proceed in
person, or shall depute one of his subordinate officers not being
below such rank as the State Government may, by general or special
order, prescribe in this behalf, to proceed, to the spot, to
investigate the facts and circumstances of the case, and, if
necessary, to take measures for the discovery and arrest of the
offender; Provided that-
(a) when information as to the commission of any such offence is
given against any person by name and the case is not of a serious
nature, the officer in charge of a police station need not proceed
in person or depute a subordinate officer to make an investigation
on the spot;
(b) if it appears to the officer in charge of a police station that
there is no sufficient ground for entering on an investigation, he
shall not investigate the case.
(2) In each of the cases mentioned in clauses (a) and (b) of the
proviso to sub- section (1), the officer in charge of the police
station shall state in his report his reasons for not fully complying
with the requirements of that sub- section, and, in the case mentioned
in clause (b) of the said proviso, the officer shall also forthwith
notify to the informant, if any, in such manner as may be prescribed
by the State Government, the fact that he will not investigate the
case or cause it to be investigated.
CrPC Section 158. Report how submitted.
(1) Every report sent to a Magistrate under section 157 shall, if the
State Government so directs, be submitted through such superior
officer of police as the State Government, by general or special
order, appoints in that behalf.
(2) Such superior officer may give such instructions to the officer in
charge of the police station as he thinks fit, and shall, after
recording such instructions on such report, transmit the same without
delay to the Magistrate.
CrPC Section 159. Power to hold investigation or Such Magistrate, on
receiving such report, may direct an investigation, or, if he thinks
fit, at once proceed, or depute any Magistrate
Subordinate to him to proceed, to hold a preliminary inquiry into, or
otherwise to dispose of, the case in the manner provided in this Code.
CrPC Section 160. Police officer’ s power to require attendance of witnesses.
(1) Any police officer, making an investigation under this Chapter
may, by order in writing, require the attendance before himself of any
person being within the limits of his own or any adjoining station
who, from the information given or otherwise, appears to be acquainted
with the facts and circumstances of the case; and such person shall
attend as so required: Provided that no male person under the age of
fifteen years or woman shall be required to attend at any place other
than the place in which such male person or woman resides.
(2) The State Government may, by rules made in this behalf, provide
for the payment by the police officer of the reasonable expenses of
every person, attending under sub- section (1) at any place other than
his residence.
CrPC Section 161. Examination of witnesses by police.
(1) Any police officer making an investigation under this Chapter, or
any police officer not below such rank as the State Government may, by
general or special order, prescribe in this behalf, acting on the
requisition of such officer, may examine orally any person supposed to
be acquainted with the facts and circumstances of the case.
(2) Such person shall be bound to answer truly all questions relating
to such case put to him by such officer, other than questions the
answers to which would have a tendency to expose him to a criminal
charge or to a penalty or forfeiture.
(3) The police officer may reduce into writing any statement made to
him in the course of an examination under this section; and if he does
so, he shall make a separate and true record of the statement of each
such person whose statement he records.
CrPC Section 162. Statements to police not to be signed: Use of statements in
evidence.
(1) No statement made by any person to a police officer in the course
of an investigation under this Chapter, shall, if reduced to writing,
be signed by the person making it; nor shall any such statement or any
record thereof, whether in a police diary or otherwise, or any part of
such statement or record, be used for any purpose, save as hereinafter
provided, at any inquiry or trial in respect of any offence under
investigation at the time when such statement was made: Provided that
when any witness is called for the prosecution in such inquiry or
trial whose statement has been reduced into writing as aforesaid, any
part of his statement, if duly proved, may be used by the accused, and
with the permission of the Court, by the prosecution, to contradict
such witness in the manner provided by section 145 of the Indian
Evidence Act, 1872 (1 of 1872 ); and when any part of such statement
is so used, any part thereof may also be used in the re- examination
of such witness, but for the purpose only of explaining any matter
referred to in his cross- examination.
(2) Nothing in this section shall be deemed to apply to any statement
falling within the provisions of clause (1) of section 32 of the
Indian Evidence Act, 1872 (1 of 1872 ), or to affect the provisions of
section 27 of that Act. Explanation.- An omission to state a fact or
circumstance in the statement referred to in sub- section (1) may
amount to contradiction if the same appears to be significant and
otherwise relevant having regard to the context in which such omission
occurs and whether any omission amounts to a contradiction in the
particular context shall be a question of fact.
CrPC Section 163. No inducement to be offered.
(1) No police officer or other person in authority shall offer or
make, or cause to be offered or made, any such inducement, threat or
promise as is mentioned in section 24 of the Indian Evidence Act, 1872
(1 of 1872 ).
(2) But no police officer or other person shall prevent, by any
caution or otherwise, any person from making in the course of any
investigation under this Chapter any statement which he may be
disposed to make of his own free will: Provided that nothing in this
sub- section shall affect the provisions of sub- section (4) of
section 164.
CrPC Section 164. Recording of confessions and statements.
(1) Any Metropolitan Magistrate or Judicial Magistrate may, whether or
not he has jurisdiction in the case, record any confession or
statement made to him in the course of an investigation under this
Chapter or under any other law for the time being in force, or at any
time afterwards before the commencement of the inquiry or trial:
Provided that no confession shall be recorded by a police officer on
whom any power of a Magistrate has been conferred under any law for
the time being in force.
(2) The Magistrate shall, before recording any such confession,
explain to the person making it that he is not bound to make a
confession and that, if he does so, it may be used as evidence against
him; and the Magistrate shall not record any such confession unless,
upon questioning the person making it, he has reason to believe that
it is being made voluntarily.
(3) If at any time before the confession is recorded, the person
appearing before the Magistrate states that he is not willing to make
the confession, the Magistrate shall not authorise the detention of
such person in police custody.
(4) Any such confession shall be recorded in the manner provided in
section 281 for recording the examination of an accused person and
shall be signed by the person making the confession; and the
Magistrate shall make a memorandum at the foot of such record to the
following effect:-” I have explained to (name) that he is not bound to
make a confession and that, if he does so, any confession he may make
may be used as evidence against him and I believe that this confession
was voluntarily made. It was taken in my presence and hearing, and was
read over to the person making it and admitted by him to be correct,
and it contains a full and true account of the statement made by him.
(Signed) A. B. Magistrate”.
(5) Any statement (other than a confession) made under sub- section
(1) shall be recorded in such manner hereinafter provided for the
recording of evidence as is, in the opinion of the Magistrate, best
fitted to the circumstances of the case; and the Magistrate shall have
power to administer oath to the person whose statement is so recorded.
(6) The Magistrate recording a confession or statement under this
section shall forward it to the Magistrate by whom the case is to be
inquired into or tried.
CrPC Section 165. Search by police officer.
(1) Whenever an officer in charge of a police station or a police
officer making an investigation has reasonable grounds for believing
that anything necessary for the purposes of an investigation into any
offence which he is authorised to investigate may be found in any
place with the limits of the police station of which he is in charge,
or to which he
is attached, and that such thing cannot in his opinion be otherwise
obtained without undue delay, such officer may, after recording in
writing the grounds of his belief and specifying in such writing, so
far as possible, the thing for which search is to be made, search, or
cause search to be made, for such thing in any place within the limits
of such station.
(2) A police officer proceeding under sub- section (1), shall, if
practicable, conduct the search in person.
(3) If he is unable to conduct the search in person, and there is no
other person competent to make the search present at the time, he may,
after recording in writing his reasons for so doing, require any
officer subordinate to him to make the search, and he shall deliver to
such subordinate officer an order in writing, specifying the place to
be searched, and so far as possible, the thing for which search is to
be made; and such subordinate officer may thereupon search for such
thing in such place.
(4) The provisions of this Code as to search- warrants and the general
provisions as to searches contained in section 100 shall, so far as
may be, apply to a search made under this section.
(5) Copies of any record made under sub- section (1) or sub- section
(3) shall forthwith be sent to the nearest Magistrate empowered to
take cognizance of the offence, and the owner or occupier of the place
searched shall, on application, be furnished, free of cost, with a
copy of the same by the Magistrate.
CrPC Section 166. When officer in charge of police station may require an
other to issue search warrant.
(1) An officer in charge of a police station or a police officer not
being below the rank of sub- inspector making an investigation may
require an officer in charge of another police station, whether in the
same or a different district, to cause a search to be made in any
place, in any case in which, the former officer might cause such
search to be made, within the limits of his own station.
(2) Such officer, on being so required, shall proceed according to the
provisions of section 165, and shall forward the thing found, if any,
to the officer at whose request the search was made.
(3) Whenever there is reason to believe that the delay occasioned by
requiring an officer in charge of another police station to cause a
search to be made under sub- section (1) might result in evidence of
the commission of an offence being concealed or destroyed, it shall be
lawful for an officer in charge of a police station or a police
officer making any investigation under this Chapter to search, or
cause to be searched, any place in the limits of another police
station in accordance with the provi-
sions of section 165, as if such place were within the limits of his
own police station.
(4) Any officer conducting a search under sub- section (3) shall
forthwith send notice of the search to the officer in charge of the
police station within the limits of which such place is situate, and
shall also send with such notice a copy of the list (if any) prepared
under section 100, and shall also send to the nearest Magistrate
empowered to take cognizance of the offence, copies of the records
referred to in sub- sections (1) and (3) of section 165.
(5) The owner or occupier of the place searched shall, on application,
be furnished free of cost with a copy of any record sent to the
Magistrate under sub- section (4).
Letter of request competent authority for investigation in a countryor
place outside India.
CrPC Section 166A. 2 Letter of request competent authority for
investigation in a country or place outside India.
(1) Notwithstanding anything contained in this Code, if, in the course
of an investigation into an offence, an application is made by the
investigating officer or any officer superior in rank to the
investigating officer that evidence may be available in a country or
place outside India, any Criminal Court may issue a letter of request
to a Court or an authority in that country or place competent to deal
with such request to examine orally any person supposed to be
acquainted with the facts and circumstances of the case and to record
his statement made in the course of such examination and also to
require such person or any other person to produce any document or
thing which may be in his possession pertaining to the case and to
forward all the evidence so taken or collected or the authenticated
copies thereof or the thing so collected to the Court issuing such
letter.
(2) The letter of request shall be transmitted in such manner as the
Central Government may specify in this behalf.
(3) Every statement recorded or document or thing received under sub-
section (1) shall be deemed to be the evidence collected during the
course of investigation under this Chapter.
Letter of request from a country or place outside India to a Court
oran authority for investigation in India.
CrPC Section 166B. Letter of request from a country or place outside India to
a Court or an authority for investigation in India.
(1) Upon receipt of a letter of request from a Court or an authority
in a country or place outside India competent to issue such letter in
that country or place for the examination of any person or production
of any document or thing in relation to an offence under investigation
in that country or place, the Central Government may, if it thinks
fit,-
(i) forward the same to the Chief Metropolitan Magistrate or Chief
Judicial Magistrate or such Metropolitan Magistrate or Judicial
Magistrate as he may appoint in this behalf, who shall thereupon
summon the person before him and record his statement or cause the
document or thing to be produced; or
(ii) send the letter to any police officer for investigation, who
shall thereupon investigate into the offence in the same manner, as
if the offence had been committed within India.
(2) All the evidence taken or collected under sub- section (1), or
authenticated copies thereof or the thing so collected, shall be
forwarded by the Magistrate or police officer, as the case may be, to
the Central Government for transmission to the Court or the authority
issuing the letter of request, in such manner as the Central Govern-
ment may deem fit.
CrPC Section 167. Procedure when investigation cannot be completed in twenty
four hours.
(1) Whenever any person is arrested and detained in custody and it
appears that the investigation cannot be completed within the period
of twenty- four hours fixed by section 57, and there are grounds for
believing that the accusation or information is well- founded, the
officer in charge of the police station or the police officer making
the investigation, if he is not below the rank of sub- inspector,
shall forthwith transmit to the nearest Judicial Magistrate a copy of
the entries in the diary hereinafter prescribed relating to the case,
and shall at the same time forward the accused to such Magistrate.
(2) The Magistrate to whom an accused person is forwarded under this
section may, whether he has or has not jurisdiction to try the case,
from time to time, authorise the detention of the accused in such
custody as such Magistrate thinks fit, for a term not exceeding
fifteen days in the whole; and if he has no jurisdiction to try the
case or commit it for trial, and considers further detention
unnecessary, he may order the accused to be forwarded to a Magistrate
having such jurisdiction: Provided that-
(a) 1 the Magistrate may authorise the detention of the
accused person, otherwise than in the custody of the police, beyond
the period of fifteen days; if he is satisfied that adequate grounds
exist for doing so, but no Magistrate shall authorise the detention
of the accused person in custody under this paragraph for a total
period exceeding,-
(i) ninety days, where the investigation relates to an offence
punishable with death, imprisonment for life or imprisonment for a
term of not less than ten years;
1. subs. by Act 45 of 1978, s, 13, for paragraph (a) (w, e, f,
18- 12- 1978 ).
2. Ins. by act 10 of 1990, s. 2 (w. e. f 19- 2- 1990 )
(ii) sixty days, where the investigation relates to any other
offence, and, on the expiry of the said period of ninety days, or
sixty days, as the case may be, the accused person shall be
released on bail if he is prepared to and does furnish bail, and
every person released on bail under this sub- section shall be
deemed to be so released under the provisions of Chapter XXXIII
for the purposes of that Chapter;]
(b) no Magistrate shall authorise detention in any custody under
this section unless the accused is produced before him;
(c) no Magistrate of the second class, not specially empowered in
this behalf by the High Court, shall authorise detention in the
custody of the police. 1 Explanation I.- For the
avoidance of doubts, it is hereby declared that, notwithstanding the
expiry of the period specified in paragraph (a), the accused shall
be detained in custody so long as he does not furnish bail;].
2
Explanation II.- If any question arises whether an accused person
was produced before the Magistrate as required under paragraph (b),
the production of the accused person may be proved by his signature
on the order authorising detention.]
(2A) 1 Notwithstanding anything contained in sub- section
(1) or sub- section (2), the officer in charge of the police station
or the police officer making the investigation, if he is not below the
rank of a sub- inspector, may, where a Judicial Magistrate is not
available, transmit to the nearest Executive Magistrate, on whom the
powers of a Judicial Magistrate or Metropolitan Magistrate have been
conferred, a copy of the entry in the diary hereinafter prescribed
relating to the case, and shall, at the same time, forward the accused
to such Executive Magistrate, and thereupon such Executive Magistrate,
may, for reasons to be recorded in writing, authorise the detention of
the accused person in such custody as he may think fit for a term not
exceeding seven days in the aggregate; and, on the expiry of the
period of detention so authorised, the accused person shall be
released on bail except where an order for further detention of the
accused person has been made by a Magistrate competent to make such
order; and, where an order for such further detention is made, the
period during which the accused person was detained in custody under
the orders made by an Executive Magistrate under this sub- section,
Section 1 ins. by Act 45 of 1978 , s. 13 (w. e. f. 18- 12- 1978 ). 2
Explanation numbered as Explanation II by s. 13, ibid. (w. e. f. 18- 12-
1978 ).
shall be taken into account in computing the period specified in para-
graph (a) of the proviso to sub- section (2): Provided that before the
expiry of the period aforesaid, the Executive Magistrate shall transmit
to the nearest Judicial Magistrate the records of the case together with
a copy of the entries in the diary relating to the case which was
transmitted to him by the officer in charge of the police station or the
police officer making the investigation, as the case may be.]
(3) A Magistrate authorising under this section detention in the
custody of the police shall record his reasons for so doing.
(4) Any Magistrate other than the Chief Judicial Magistrate making
such order shall forward a copy of his order, with his reasons for
making it, to the Chief Judicial Magistrate.
(5) If in any case triable by a Magistrate as a summons- case, the
investigation is not concluded within a period of six months from the
date on which the accused was arrested, the Magistrate shall make an
order stopping further investigation into the offence unless the
officer making the investigation satisfies the Magistrate that for
special reasons and in the interests of justice the continuation of
the investigation beyond the period of six months is necessary.
(6) Where any order stopping further investigation into an offence has
been made under sub- section (5), the Sessions Judge may, if he is
satisfied, on an application made to him or otherwise, that further
investigation into the offence ought to be made, vacate the order made
under sub- section (5) and direct further investigation to be made
into the offence subject to such directions with regard to bail and
other matters as he may specify.
CrPC Section 168. Report of investigation by subordinate police officer. When
any subordinate police officer has made any investigation under this
Chapter, he shall report the result of such investigation to the officer
in charge of the police station.
CrPC Section 169. Release of accused when evidence deficient. If, upon an
investigation under this Chapter, it appears to the officer in charge of
the police station that there is not sufficient evidence or reasonable
ground of suspicion to justify the forwarding of the accused to a
Magistrate, such officer shall, if such person is in custody, release
him on his executing a bond, with or without sureties, as such officer
may direct, to appear, if and when so required, before a Magistrate
empowered to take cognizance of the offence on a police report, and to
try the accused or commit him for trial.
CrPC Section 170. Cases to be sent to Magistrate, when evidence is
sufficient.
(1) If, upon an investigation under this Chapter, it appears to the
officer in charge of the police station that there is sufficient
evidence or reasonable ground as aforesaid, such officer shall forward
the accused under custody to a Magistrate empowered to take cognizance
of the offence upon a police report and to try the accused or commit
him for trial, or, if the offence is bailable and the accused is able
to give security, shall take security from him for his appearance
before such Magistrate on a day fixed and for his attendance from day
to day before such Magistrate until otherwise directed.
(2) When the officer in charge of a police station forward an accused
person to a Magistrate or takes security for his appearance before
such Magistrate under this section, he shall send to such Magistrate
any weapon or other article which it may be necessary to produce
before him, and shall require the complainant (if any) and so many of
the persons who appear to such officer to be acquainted with the facts
and circumstances of the cage as he may think necessary, to execute a
bond to appear before the Magistrate as thereby directed and prosecute
or give evidence (as the case may be) in the matter of the charge
against the accused.
(3) If the Court of the Chief Judicial Magistrate is mentioned in the
bond, such Court shall be held to include any Court to which such
Magistrate may refer the case for inquiry or trial, provided
reasonable notice of such reference is given to such complainant or
persons.
(4) The officer in whose presence the bond is executed shall deliver a
copy thereof to one of the persons who executed it, and shall then
send to the Magistrate the original with his report.
CrPC Section 171. Complainant and witnesses not to be required to accompany
police officer and not to be subjected to restraint. No complainant or
witness on his way to any Court shall be required to accompany a police
officer, or shall be subjected to unnecessary restraint or
inconvenience, or required to give any security for his appearance other
than his own bond: Provided that, if any complainant or witness refuses
to attend or to execute a bond as directed in section 170, the officer
in charge of the police station may forward him in custody to the
Magistrate, who may detain him in custody until he executes such bond,
or until the hearing of the case is completed.-
CrPC Section 172. Diary of proceedings in investigation.
(1) Every police officer making an investigation under this Chapter
shall day by day enter his proceedings in the investigation in a
diary, setting forth the time at which the information reached him,
the time at which he began and closed his investigation, the place or
places visited
by him, and a statement of the circumstances ascertained through his
investigation.
(2) Any Criminal Court may send for the police diaries of a case under
inquiry or trial in such Court, and may use such diaries, not as
evidence in the case, but to aid it in such inquiry or trial.
(3) Neither the accused nor his agents shall be entitled to call for
such diaries, nor shall he or they be entitled to see them merely
because they are referred to by the Court; but, if they are used by
the police officer who made them to refresh his memory, or if the
Court uses them for the purpose of contradicting such police officer,
the provisions of section 161 or section 145, as the case may be, of
the Indian Evidence Act, 1872 (1 of 1872 ), shall apply,
CrPC Section 173. Report of police officer on completion of investigation.
(1) Every investigation under this Chapter shall be completed without
unnecessary delay.
(2) (i) As soon as it is completed, the officer in charge of the
police station shall forward to a Magistrate empowered to take
cognizance of the offence on a police report, a report in the form
prescribed by the State Government, stating-
(a) the names of the parties;
(b) the nature of the information;
(c) the names of the persons who appear to be acquainted with the
circumstances of the case;
(d) whether any offence appears to have been committed and, if so,
by whom;
(e) whether the accused has been arrested;
(f) whether he has been released on his bond and, if so, weather
with or without sureties;
(g) whether he has been forwarded in custody under section 170.
(ii) The officer shall also communicate, In such manner as may be
prescribed by the State Government, the action taken by him, to
the person, if any, by whom the information relating to the
commission of the offence was first given.
(3) Where a superior officer of police has been appointed under
section 158, the report shall, in any case in which the State
Government by general or special order so directs, be submitted
through that officer, and he may, pending the orders of the
Magistrate, direct the officer in charge of the police station to make
further investigation,
(4) Whenever it appears from a report forwarded under this section
that the accused has been released on his bond, the Magistrate shall
make such order- for the discharge of such bond or otherwise as he
thinks fit.
(5) When such report is in respect of a case to which section 170
applies, the police officer shall forward to the Magistrate alongwith
the report-
(a) all documents or relevant extracts thereof on which the
prosecution proposes to rely other than those already sent to the
Magistrate during investigation;
(b) the statements- recorded under section 161 of all the persons
whom the prosecution proposes to examine as its witnesses.
(6) If the police officer is of opinion that any part of any such
statement is not relevant to the subject- matter of the proceedings or
that its disclosure to the accused is not essential in the interests
of justice and is inexpedient in the public interest, he shall
indicate that part of the statement and append a note requesting the
Magistrate to exclude that part from the copies to be granted to the
accused and stating his reasons for making such request.
(7) Where the police officer investigating the case finds it
convenient so to do, he may furnish to the accused copies of all or
any of the documents referred to in sub- section (5).
(8) Nothing in this section shall be deemed to preclude further
investigation in respect of an offence after a report under sub-
section (2) has been forwarded to the Magistrate and, where upon such
investigation, the officer in charge of the police station obtains
further evidence, oral or documentary, he shall forward to the
Magistrate a further report or reports regarding such evidence in the
form prescribed; and the provisions of sub- sections (2) to (6) shall,
as far as may be, apply in relation to such report or reports as they
apply in relation to a report forwarded under sub- section (2).
CrPC Section 174. Police to enquire and report on suicide, etc.
(1) When the officer in charge of a police station or some other
police officer specially empowered by the State Government in that
behalf receives information that a person has committed suicide, or
has been killed by another or by an animal or by machinery or by an
accident, or has died under circumstances raising a reasonable
suspicion that some other person has committed an offence, he shall
immediately give intimation thereof to the nearest Executive
Magistrate empowered to hold inquests, and, unless otherwise directed
by any rule prescribed by the State Government, or by any general or
special order of the District or Sub- divisional Magistrate, shall
proceed to the place where the body
of such deceased person is, and there, in the presence of two’ or more
respectable inhabitants of the neighbourhood, shall make an investiga-
tion, and draw up a report of the apparent cause of death, describing
such wounds, fractures, bruises, and other marks of injury as may be
found on the body, and stating in what manner, or by what weapon or
instrument (if any); such marks appear to have been inflicted.
(2) The report shall be signed by such police officer and other
persons, or by so many of them as concur therein, and shall be
forthwith forwarded to the District Magistrate or the Sub- divisional
Magistrate.
(3) 1 When-
(i) the case involves suicide by a woman within seven years of her
marriage; or
(ii) the case relates to the death of a woman within seven years of
her marriage in any circumstances raising a reasonable suspicion
that some other person committed an offence in relation to such
woman; or
(iii) the case relates to the death of a woman within seven years of
her marriage and any relative of the woman has made a request in
this behalf; or
(iv) there is any doubt regarding the cause of death; or
(v) the police officer for any other reason considers it expedient
so to do, he shall. subject to such rules as the State Government
may prescribe in this behalf, forward the body, with a view to its
being examined, to the nearest Civil Surgeon, or other qualified
medical man appointed in this behalf by the State Government, if the
state of the weather and the distance admit of its being so
forwarded without risk of such putrefaction on the road as would
render such examination useless.
(4) The following Magistrates are empowered to hold inquests, namely,
any District Magistrate or Sub- divisional Magistrate and any other
Executive Magistrate specially empowered in this behalf by the State
Government or the District Magistrate.
CrPC Section 175. Power to summon persons.
(1) A police officer proceeding under section 174, may, by order in
writing, summon two or more persons as aforesaid for the purpose of
the said investigation, and any other person who appears to be
acquainted with the facts of the case and every person so summoned
shall be bound to attend and to answer truly all questions other than
questions the answers to which would have a tendency to expose him to
a criminal charge or to a penalty or forfeiture.
(2) If the facts do not disclose a cognizable offence to which section
170 applies, such persons shall not be required by the police officer
to attend a Magistrate’ s Court.
CrPC Section 176. Inquiry by Magistrate into cause of death.
(1) 2 When any person dies while in the custody of the
police or when the case is of the nature referred to in clause (i) or
clause (ii) of sub- section (3) of section 174] the nearest
Magistrate- empowered to hold inquests shall, and in any other case
mentioned in sub- section (1) of section 174, any Magistrate so
empowered may hold an inquiry into the cause of death either instead
of, or in addition to, the investigation held by the police officer;
and if he does so, he shall have all the powers in conducting it which
he would have in holding an inquiry into an offence.
1. Subs. by Act 46 of 1983, S. 3
2. Subs. by s. 4, ibid.
(2) The Magistrate holding such an inquiry shall record the evidence
taken by him in connection therewith in any manner hereinafter
prescribed according to the circumstances of the case.
(3) Whenever such Magistrate considers it expedient to make an
examination of the dead body of any person who has been already
interred, in order to discover the cause of his death, the Magistrate
may cause the body to be disinterred and examined.
(4) Where an inquiry is to be held under this section, the Magistrate
shall, wherever practicable, inform the relatives of the deceased
whose names and addresses are known, and shall allow them to remain
present at the inquiry. Explanation.- In this section, expression”
relative” means parents, children, brothers, sisters and spouse. CHAP
JURISDICTION OF THE CRIMINAL COURTS IN INQUIRIES AND TRIALS CHAPTER
XIII JURISDICTION OF THE CRIMINAL COURTS IN INQUIRIES AND TRIALS
CrPC Section 177. Ordinary place of inquiry and trial. Every offence shall
ordinarily be inquired into and tried by a Court within whose local
jurisdiction it was committed.
CrPC Section 178. Place of inquiry or trial. (a) When it is uncertain in
which of several local areas an offence was committed, or
(b) where an offence is committed, partly in one local area and partly
in another, or
(c) where an offence, is a continuing one, and continues to be
committed in more local areas than one, or
(d) where it consists of several acts done in different local areas,
it may be inquired into or tried by a Court having jurisdiction over
any of such local areas.
CrPC Section 179. Offence triable where act is done or consequence ensues.
When an act is an offence by reason of anything which has been done and
of a consequence which has ensued, the offence may be inquired into or
tried by a Court within whose local jurisdiction such thing has been
done or such consequence has ensued.
CrPC Section 180. Place of trial where act is an offence by reason of
relation to other offence. When an act is an offence by reason of its
relation to any other act which is also an offence or which would be an
offence if the doer were capable of committing an offence, the first-
mentioned offence may be inquired into or tried by a Court within whose
local jurisdiction either act was done.
CrPC Section 181. Place of trial in case of certain offences.
(1) Any offence of being a thug, or murder committed by a thug, of
dacoity, of dacoity with murder, of belonging to a gang of dacoits, or
of escaping from custody, may be inquired into or tried by a Court
within whose local jurisdiction the offence was committed or the
accused person is found.
(2) Any offence of kidnapping or abduction of a person may be inquired
into or tried by a Court within whose local jurisdiction the person
was kidnapped or abducted or was conveyed or concealed or detained.
(3) Any offence of theft, extortion or robbery may be inquired into or
tried by a Court within whose local jurisdiction the offence was
committed or the stolen property which is the subject of the offence
was possessed by any person committing it or by any person who
received or retained such property knowing or having reason to relieve
it to be stolen property.
(4) Any offence of criminal misappropriation or of criminal breach of
trust may be inquired into or tried by a Court within whose local
jurisdiction the offence was committed or any part of the property
which is the subject of the offence was received or retained, or was
required to be returned or accounted for, by the accused person.
(5) Any offence which includes the possession of stolen property may
be inquired into or tried by a Court within whose local jurisdiction
the offence was committed or the stolen property was possessed by any
person who received or retained it knowing or having reason to believe
it to be stolen property.
CrPC Section 182. Offences committed by letters, etc.
(1) Any offence which includes cheating may, if the deception is
practised by means of letters or telecommunication messages, be
inquired into or tried by any Court within whose local jurisdiction
such letters or messages were sent or were received; and any offence
of cheating and dishonestly inducing delivery of property may be
inquired into or tried by a Court within whose local jurisdiction the
property was delivered by the person deceived or was received by the
accused person.
(2) Any offence punishable under section 494 or section 495 of the
Indian Penal Code (45 of 1860 ) may be inquired into or tried by a
Court within whose
local jurisdiction the offence was committed or the offender last
resided with his or her spouse by the first marriage 1 or
the wife by the first marriage has taken up permanent residence after
the commission of the offence].
CrPC Section 183. Offence committed on journey or voyage. When an offence is
committed whilst the person by or against whom, or the thing in respect
of which, the offence is committed is in the course of performing a
journey or voyage, the offence may be inquired into or tried by a Court
through or into whose local jurisdiction that person or thing passed in
the course of that journey or voyage.
CrPC Section 184. Place of trial for offences triable together. Where-
(a) the offences committed by any person are such that he may be
charged with and tried at one trial for, each such offence by virtue
of the provisions of section 219, section 220 or section 221, or
(b) the offence of offences committed by several persons are such that
they may be charged with and tried together by virtue of the
provisions of section 223, the offences may be inquired into or tried
by any Court competent to inquire into or try any of the offences.
CrPC Section 185. Power to order cases to be tried in different sessions
divisions. Notwithstanding anything contained in the preceding
provisions of this Chapter, the State Government may direct that any
cases or class of cases committed for trial in any district may be tried
in any sessions division: Provided that such direction is not repugnant
to any direction previously issued by the High Court or the Supreme
Court under the Constitution, or under this Code or any other law for
the time being in force.
CrPC Section 186. High Court to decide, in case of doubt, district where
inquiry or trial shall take place. Where two or more Courts have taken
cognizance of the same offence and a question arises as to which of them
ought to inquire into or try that offence, the question shall be
decided-
(a) if the Courts are subordinate to the same High Court, by that High
Court;
(b) if the Courts are not subordinate to the same High Court, by the
High Court within the local limits of whose appellate criminal
jurisdiction the proceedings were first commenced 1 Ins. by Act 45 of
1978 , s. 15 (w. e. f. 18- 12- 1980 ).
and thereupon all other proceedings in respect of that offence shall
be discontinued.
CrPC Section 187. Power to issue summons or warrant for offence committed
beyond local jurisdiction.
(1) When a Magistrate of the first class sees reason to believe that
any person within his local jurisdiction has committed outside such
jurisdiction (whether within or outside India) an offence which
cannot, under the provisions of sections 177 to 185 (both inclusive),
or any other law for the time being in force, be inquired into or
tried within such jurisdiction but is under some law for the time
being in force triable in India, such Magistrate may inquire into the
offence as if it had been committed within such local jurisdiction and
compel such person in the manner. hereinbefore provided to appear
before him, and send such person to the Magistrate having jurisdiction
to inquire into or try such offence, or, if such offence is not
punishable with death or imprisonment for life and such person is
ready and willing to give bail to the satisfaction of the Magistrate
acting under this section, take a bond With or without sureties for
his appearance before the Magistrate having such jurisdiction.
(2) When there are more Magistrates than one having such jurisdiction
and the Magistrate acting under this section cannot satisfy himself as
to the Magistrate to or before whom such person should be sent or
bound to appear, the case shall be reported for the orders of the High
Court.
CrPC Section 188. Offence committed outside India. When an offence is
committed outside India-
(a) by a citizen of India, whether on the high seas or elsewhere; or
(b) by a person, not being such citizen, on any ship or aircraft
registered in India, he may be dealt with in respect of such offence
as if it had been com- mitted at any place within India at which he
may be found: Provided that, notwithstanding anything in any of the
preceding sections of this Chapter, no such offence shall be inquired
into or tried in India except with the previous sanction of the
Central Government.
CrPC Section 189. Receipt of evidence relating to offences committed outside
India. When any offence alleged to have been committed in a territory
outside India is being inquired into or tried under the provisions of
section 188, the Central Government may, if it thinks fit, direct that
copies of depositions made or exhibits produced before a judicial
officer in or for that territory or before a diplomatic or consular
representative of India in or for that territory shall be received as
evidence by the Court holdings such inquiry or trial in any case in
which such Court might issue a commission for taking evidence as to the
matters to which such depositions exhibits relate.
CHAP CONDITIONS REQUISITE FOR INITIATION OF PROCEEDINGS…… CHAPTER
XIV CONDITIONS REQUISITE FOR INITIATION OF PROCEEDINGS……
CrPC Section 190. Cognizance of offences by Magistrates.
(1) Subject to the provisions of this Chapter, any Magistrate of the
first class, and any Magistrate of the second class specially
empowered in this behalf under sub- section (2), may take cognizance
of any offence-
(a) upon receiving a complaint of facts which constitute such
offence;
(b) upon a police report of such facts;
(c) upon information received from any person other than a police
officer, or upon his own knowledge, that such offence has been
committed.
(2) The Chief Judicial Magistrate may empower any Magistrate of the
second class to take cognizance under sub- section (1) of such
offences as are within his competence to inquire into or try.
CrPC Section 191. Transfer on application of the accused. When a Magistrate
takes cognizance of an offence under clause (c) of sub- section
(1) of section 190, the accused shall, before any evidence is taken,
be informed that he is entitled to have the case inquired into or
tried by another Magistrate, and if the accused or any of the accused,
if there be more than one, objects to further proceedings before the
Magistrate taking cognizance, the case shall be transferred to such
other Magistrate as may be specified by the Chief Judicial Magistrate
in this behalf.
CrPC Section 192. Making over of cases to Magistrates.
(1) Any Chief Judicial Magistrate may, after taking cognizance of an
offence, make over the case for inquiry or trial to any competent
Magistrate subordinate to him.
(2) Any Magistrate of the first class empowered in this behalf by the
Chief Judicial Magistrate may, after taking cognizance of an offence,
make over the case for inquiry or trial to such other competent
Magistrate as the Chief Judicial Magistrate may, by general or special
order, specify, and thereupon such Magistrate may hold the inquiry or
trial.
CrPC Section 193. Cognizance of offences by Courts of Session. Except as
otherwise expressly provided by this Code or by any other law for the
time being in force, no Court of Session shall take cognizance of any
offence as a Court of original jurisdiction unless the case has been
committed to it by a Magistrate under this Code.
CrPC Section 194. Additional and Assistant Sessions Judges to try cases made
over to them. An Additional Sessions Judge or Assistant Sessions Judge
shall try such cases as the Sessions Judge of the division may, by
general or
special order, make over to him for trial or as the High Court may, by
special order, direct him to try.
CrPC Section 195. Prosecution for contempt of lawful authority of public
servants, for offences against public justice and for offences relating
to documents given in evidence.
(1) No Court shall take cognizance-
(a) (i) of any offence punishable under sections 172 to 188 (both
inclusive) of the Indian Penal Code (45 of 1860 ), or
(ii) of any abetment of, or attempt to commit, such offence, or
(iii) of any criminal conspiracy to commit such offence, except on
the complaint in writing of the public servant concerned or of
some other public servant to whom he is administratively
subordinate;
(b) (i) of any offence punishable under any of the following
sections of the Indian Penal Code (45 of 1860 ), namely, sections
193 to 196 (both inclusive), 199, 200, 205 to 211 (both inclusive)
and 228, when such offence is alleged to have been committed in, or
in relation to, any proceeding in any Court, or
(ii) of any offence described in section 463, or punishable under
section 471, section 475 or section 476, of the said Code, when
such offence is alleged to have been committed in respect of a
document produced or given in evidence in a proceeding in any
Court, or
(iii) of any criminal conspiracy to commit, or attempt to commit,
or the abetment of, any offence specified in sub- clause (i) or
sub- clause (ii), except on the complaint in writing of that
Court, or of some other Court to which that Court is subordinate.
(2) Where a complaint has been made by a public servant under clause
(a) of sub- section (1) any authority to which he is administratively
subordinate may order the withdrawal of the complaint and send a copy
of such order to the Court; and upon its receipt by the Court, no
further proceedings shall be taken on the complaint: Provided that no
such withdrawal shall be ordered if the trial in the Court of first
instance has been concluded.
(3) In clause (b) of sub- section (1), the term” Court” means a Civil,
Revenue or Criminal Court, and includes a tribunal constituted by or
under a Central, Provincial or State Act if declared by that Act to be
a Court for the purposes of this section.
(4) For the purposes of clause (b) of sub- section (1), a Court shall
be deemed to be subordinate to the Court to which appeals ordinarily
lie from the appealable decrees or sentences of such former Court, or
in the case of a Civil Court from whose decrees no appeal ordinarily
lies, to the principal Court having ordinary original civil
jurisdiction within whose local jurisdiction such Civil Court in
situate: Provided that-
(a) where appeals lie to more than one Court, the Appellate Court of
inferior jurisdiction shall be the Court to which such Court shall
be deemed to be subordinate;
(b) where appeals lie to a Civil and also to a Revenue Court, such
Court shall be deemed to be subordinate to the Civil or Revenue
Court according to the nature of the case or proceeding in
connection with which the offence is alleged to have been committed.
CrPC Section 196. Prosecution for offences against the State and for criminal
conspiracy to commit such offence.
(1) No Court shall take cognizance of-
(a) any offence punishable under Chapter VI or under section 153A,
of Indian Penal Code, or 2
Section 295 A or sub section (1) of section 505] of the Indian Penal
Code (45 of 1860 ) or
(b) a criminal conspiracy to commit such offence, or
(c) any such abetment, as is described in section 108A of the Indian
Penal Code (45 of 1860 ), except with the previous sanction of the
Central Government or of the State Government.
(1A) 2 No Court shall take cognizance of-
(a) any offence punishable under section 153B or sub- section (2) or
sub- section (3) of section 505 of the Indian Penal Code (45 of 1860
), or
(b) a criminal conspiracy to commit such offence, except with the
previous sanction of the Central Government or of the State
Government or of the District Magistrate.]
(2) No Court shall take cognizance of the offence of any criminal
conspiracy punishable under section 120B of the Indian Penal code (45
of 1860 ), other than a criminal conspiracy to commit 1 an
offence] punishable with death, imprisonment for life or rigorous
imprisonment for a term of two years or upwards, unless the State
Government or the District Magistrate has consented in writing to the
initiation of the proceedings: Provided that where the criminal
conspiracy is one to which the provisions of section 195 apply, no
such consent shall be necessary.
(3) The Central Government or the State Government may, before
according sanction 2 under sub- section (1) or sub- section
(1A) and the District Magistrate may, before according sanction under
sub- section (1A) and the State Government or the District Magistrate
may, before giving consent under sub- section (2), order a preliminary
investigation by a police officer not being below the 1 Subs. Act. 45
of 978, s. 16, for” a cognizable offence” (w. e. f. 18- 12- 1978 ) 2
subs. and ins by act 63 of 1980 s. 3 (w. e. f. 23- 9- 1980 )
rank of Inspector, in which case such police officer shall have the
powers referred to in sub- section (3) of section 155.
CrPC Section 197. Prosecution of Judges and public servants.
(1) When any person who is or was a Judge or Magistrate or a public
servant not removable from his office save by or with the sanction of
the Government is accused of any offence alleged to have been
committed by him while acting or purporting to act in the discharge of
his official duty, no Court shall take cognizance of such offence
except with the previous sanction-
(a) in the case of a person who is employed or, as the case may be,
was at the time of commission of the alleged offence employed, in
connection with the affairs of the Union, of the Central Government;
(b) in the case of a person who is employed or, as the case may be,
was at the time of commission of the alleged offence employed, in
connection with the affairs of a State, of the State Government:
1
Provided that where the alleged offence was committed by a person
referred to in clause (b) during the period while a Proclamation
issued under clause (1) of article 356 of the Constitution was in
force in a State, clause (b) will apply as if for the expression”
State Government” occurring therein, the expression” Central
Government” were substituted.
(2) No Court shall take cognizance of any offence alleged to have been
committed by any member of the Armed Forces of the Union while acting
or purporting to act in the discharge of his official duty, except
with the previous sanction of the Central Government.
(3) The State Government may, by notification, direct that the
provisions of sub- section (2) shall apply to such class or category
of the members of the Forces charged with the maintenance of public
order as may be specified therein, wherever they may be serving, and
thereupon the provisions of that sub- section will apply as if for the
expression” Central Government” occurring therein, the expression”
State Government” were substituted.
(3A) 1 Notwithstanding anything contained in sub- section
(3), no court shall take cognizance of any offence, alleged to have
been committed by any member of the Forces charged with the
maintenance of public order in a State while acting or purporting to
act in the discharge of his official duty during the period while a
Proclamation issued under clause (1) of article 356 of the
Constitution was in force therein, except with the previous sanction
of the Central Government.
(3B) Notwithstanding anything to the contrary contained in this Code
or any other law, it is hereby declared that any sanction accorded by
the State Government or any cognizance taken by a court upon such
sanction, during the period commencing on the 20th day of August, 1991
and ending with the date immediately preceding the date on which the
Code of Criminal Procedure (Amendment) Act, 1991 , receives the assent
of the President, with respect to an offence alleged to have been
committed during the period while a Proclamation issued under clause
(1) of article 356 of the Constitution was in force in the State,
shall be invalid and it shall be competent for the Central Government
in such matter to accord sanction and for the court to take cognizance
thereon.]
(4) The Central Government or the State Government, as the case may
be, may determine the person by whom, the manner in which, and the
offence or offences for which, the prosecution of such Judge, Magis-
trate or public servant is to be conducted, and may specify the Court
before which the trial is to be held.
CrPC Section 198. Prosecution for offences against marriage.
(1) No Court shall take cognizance of an offence punishable under
Chapter XX of the Indian Penal Code (45 of 1860 ) except upon a
complaint made by some person aggrieved by the offence: Provided that-
(a) Where such person is under the age of eighteen years or is an
idiot or a lunatic, or is from sickness or infirmity unable to.
make a complaint, or is a woman who, according to the local customs
and manners, ought not to be compelled to appear in public, some
other person may, with the leave of the Court, make a complaint on
his or her behalf;
1. Added and Ins. by Act 43 of 1991, s. 2 (w. e. f. 1991 ).
(b) where such person is the husband and he is serving in any of the
Armed Forces of the Union under conditions which are certified by
his Commanding Officer as precluding him from obtaining leave of
absence to enable him to make a complaint in person, some other
person authorised by the husband in accordance with the provisions
of sub- section (4) may make a complaint on his behalf;
(c) where the person aggrieved by an offence punishable under
1
section 494 or section 495] of the Indian Penal Code (45 of 1860 )
is the wife, complaint may be made on her behalf by her father,
mother, brother, sister, son or daughter or by her father’ s or
mother’ s brother or sister 2
, or, with the leave of the Court, by any other person related to
her by blood, marriage or adoption].
(2) For the purposes of sub- section (1), no person other than the
husband of the woman shall be deemed to be aggrieved by any offence
punishable under section 497 or section 498 of the said Code: Provided
that in the absence of the husband, some person who had care of the
woman on his behalf at the time when such offence was com- mitted may,
with the leave of the Court, make a complaint on his behalf.
(3) When in any case falling under clause (a) of the proviso to
subsection (1), the complaint is sought to be made on behalf of a
person under the age of eighteen years or of a lunatic by a person who
has not been appointed or declared by a competent authority to be the
guardian of the person of the minor or lunatic, and the Court is
satisfied that there is a guardian so appointed or declared, the Court
shall, before granting the application for leave, cause notice to be
given to such guardian and give him a reasonable opportunity of being
heard.
(4) The authorisation referred to in clause (b) of the proviso to
subsection (1), shall be in writing, shall be signed or otherwise
attested by the husband, shall contain a statement to the effect that
he has been informed of the allegations upon which the complaint is to
be founded, shall be countersigned by his Commanding Officer, and
shall be accompanied by a certificate signed by that Officer to the
effect that leave of 1 Subs. by Act 45 of 1978 , s. 17, for” section
494″ (w. e. f. 18- 12- 1978 ). 2 Ins. by s. 17, ibid. (w. e. f. 18-
12- 1978 ).
absence for the purpose of making a complaint in person cannot for the
time being be granted to the husband.
(5) Any document purporting to be such an authorisation and complying
with the provisions of sub- section (4), and any document purporting
to be a certificate required by that sub- section shall, unless the
contrary is proved, be presumed to be genuine and shall be received in
evidence.
(6) No Court shall take cognizance of an offence under section 376 of
the Indian Penal Code, where such offence consists of sexual
intercourse the a man with his own wife, the wife being under fifteen
years of age, if more than one year has elapsed from the date of the
commission of the offence.
(7) The provisions of this section apply to the abetment of, or
attempt to commit, an offence as they apply to the offence.
Prosecution of offences under section 498A of the Indian Penal Code.
CrPC Section 198A. 1 Prosecution of offences under section 498A of
the Indian Penal Code. No Court shall take cognizance of an Offence
Punishable section 498A of the Indian Penal Code except upon a police
report of facts which constitute such offence or Upon a complaint made
by the person aggrieved by the offence or by her father, mother,
brother, sister or by her father’ s or mother’ s brother or sister or,
with the leave of the Court, by any other person related to her by
blood, marriage or adoption.
CrPC Section 199. Prosecution for defamation.
(1) No Court shall take cognizance of an offence punishable under
Chapter XXI of the Indian Penal Code (45 of 1860 ) except upon a
complaint made by some person aggrieved by the offence: Provided that
where such person is under the age of eighteen years, or is an idiot
or a lunatic, or is from sickness or infirmity unable to make a
complaint, or is a woman who, according to the local customs and
manners, ought not to be compelled to appear in public, some other
person may, with the leave of the Court make a complaint on his or her
behalf.
(2) Notwithstanding anything contained in this Code, when any offence
falling under Chapter XXI of the Indian Penal Code (45 of 1860 ) is
alleged to have been committed against a person who at the time of
such commission, is the President of India, the Vice- President of
India, the Governor of a State, the Administrator of a Union territory
or a Minister of the Union or of a State or of a Union territory, or
any other public servant employed in connection with the affairs of
the Union or of a State in respect of his conduct in the discharge of
his public functions a Court of Session may take cognizance of such
offence, without the case being committed to it, upon a complaint in
writing made by the Public Prosecutor.
(3) Every complaint referred to in sub- section (2) shall set forth
the facts which constitute the offence alleged, the nature of such
offence and such other particulars as are reasonably sufficient to
give notice to the caused of the offence alleged to have been
committed by him.
1. Ins. by Act 46 of 1983, s. 5.
(4) No complaint Under sub- section (2) shall be made by the Public
Prosecutor except with the previous sanction-
(a) of the State Government, in the case of a person who is or has
been the Governor of that State or a Minister of that Government;
(b) of the State Government, in the case of any other public servant
employed in connection with the affairs of the State;
(c) of the Central Government, in any other case.
(5) No Court of Session shall take cognizance of an offence under sub-
section (2) unless the complaint is made within six months from the
date on which the offence is alleged to have been committed.
(6) Nothing in this section shall affect the right of the person
against whom the offence is alleged to have been committed, to make a
complaint in respect of that offence before a Magistrate having
jurisdiction or the power of such Magistrate to take cognizance of the
offence upon such complaint. CHAP COMPLAINTS TO MAGISTRATES CHAPTER XV
COMPLAINTS TO MAGISTRATES
Examination of complainant.
CrPC Section 200. Examination of complainant. A Magistrate taking cognizance
of an offence on complaint shall examine upon oath the complainant and
the witnesses present, if any, and the substance of such examination
shall be reduced to writing and shall be signed by the complainant and
the witnesses, and also by the Magistrate: Provided that, when the
complaint is made in writing, the Magistrate need not examine the
complainant and the witnesses-
(a) if a public servant acting or- purporting to act in the discharge
of his official duties or a Court has made the complaint; or
(b) if the Magistrate makes over the case for inquiry or trial to
another Magistrate under section 192: Provided further that if the
Magistrate makes over the case to another Magistrate under section 192
after examining the complainant and the witnesses, the latter
Magistrate need not re- examine them.
CrPC Section 201. Procedure by Magistrate not competent to take cognizance of
the case. If the complaint is made to a Magistrate who is not competent
to take cognizance of the offence, he shall,-
(a) if the complaint is in writing, return it for presentation to the
proper Court with an endorsement to that effect;
(b) if the complaint is not in writing, direct the complainant to the
proper Court.
CrPC Section 202. Postponement of issue of process.
(1) Any Magistrate, on receipt of a complaint of an offence of which
he is authorised to take cognizance or which has been made over to him
under section 192, may, if he thinks fit, postpone the issue of
process against the accused, and either inquire into the case himself
or direct an investigation to be made by a police officer or by such
other person as he thinks fit, for the purpose of deciding whether or
not there is sufficient ground for proceeding: Provided that no such
direction for investigation shall be made,–
(a) where it appears to the Magistrate that the offence complained
of is triable exclusively by the Court of Session; or
(b) where the complaint has not been made by a Court, unless the
complainant and the witnesses present (if any) have been examined on
oath under section 200.
(2) In an inquiry under sub- section (1), the Magistrate may, if he
thinks fit, take evidence of witnesses on oath: Provided that if it
appears to the Magistrate that the offence complained of is triable
exclusively by the Court of Session, he shall call upon the
complainant to produce all his witnesses and examine them on oath.
(3) If an investigation under sub- section (1) is made by a person not
being a police officer, he shall have for that investigation all the
powers conferred by this Code on an officer- in- charge of a police
station except the power to arrest without warrant.
CrPC Section 203. Dismissal of complaint. If, after considering the
statements on oath (if any) of the complainant and of the witnesses and
the result of the inquiry or investigation (if any) under section 202,
the Magistrate is of opinion that there is no sufficient ground for
proceeding, he shall dismiss the complaint, and in every such case he
shall briefly record his reasons for so doing, CHAP COMMENCEMENT OF
PROCEEDINGS BEFORE MAGISTRATES CHAPTER XVI COMMENCEMENT OF PROCEEDINGS
BEFORE MAGISTRATES
CrPC Section 204. Issue of process.
(1) If in the opinion of a Magistrate taking cognizance of an offence
there is sufficient ground for proceeding, and the case appears to be-
(a) a summons- case, he shall issue his summons for the attendance
of the accused, or
(b) a warrant- case, he may issue a warrant, or, if he thinks fit, a
summons, for causing the accused to be brought or to appear
at a certain time before such Magistrate or (if he has no
jurisdiction himself) some other Magistrate having jurisdiction.
(2) No summons or warrant shall be issued against the accused under
sub- section (1) until a list of the prosecution witnesses has been
filed.
(3) In a proceeding instituted upon a complaint made in writing every
summons or warrant issued under sub- section (1) shall be accom-
panied by a copy of such complaint.
(4) When by any law for the time being in force any process- fees or
other fees are payable, no process shall be issued until the fees are
paid and, if such fees are not paid within a reasonable time, the
Magistrate may dismiss the complaint.
(5) Nothing in this section shall be deemed to affect the provisions
of section 87.
CrPC Section 205. Magistrate may dispense with personal attendance of
accused.
(1) Whenever a Magistrate issues a summons, he may, if he sees reason
so to do, dispense with the personal attendance of the accused and
permit him to appear by his pleader.
(2) But the Magistrate inquiring into or trying the case may, in his
discretion, at any stage of the proceedings, direct the personal
attendance of the accused, and, if necessary, enforce such attendance
in the manner hereinbefore provided.
CrPC Section 206. Special summons in cases of petty offence.
(1) If, in the opinion of a Magistrate taking cognizance of a petty
offence, the case may be summarily disposed of under section 260, the
Magistrate shall, except where he is, for reasons to be recorded in
writing of a contrary opinion, issue summons to the accused requiring
him either to appear in person or by pleader before the Magistrate on
a specified date, or if he desires to plead guilty to the charge
without appearing before the Magistrate, to transmit before the
specified date, by post or by messenger to the Magistrate, the said
plea in writing and the amount of fine specified in the summons or if
he desires to appear by pleader and to plead guilty to the charge
through such pleader, to authorise, in writing, the pleader to plead
guilty to the charge on his behalf and to pay the fine through such
pleader: Provided that the amount of the fine specified in such
summons shall not exceed one hundred rupees.
(2) For the purposes of this section,” petty offence” means any
offence punishable only with fine not exceeding one thousand rupees,
but does not include any offence so punishable under the Motor
Vehicles Act, 1939 (4of 1939), or under any other law which provides
for convicting the accused person in his absence on a plea of guilty,
(3) 1 The State Government may, by notification, specially
empower any Magistrate to exercise the powers conferred by sub-
section (1) in relation to any offence which is compoundable under
section 320 or any offence punishable with imprisonment for a term not
exceeding three months, or with fine, or with both where the
Magistrate is of opinion that, having regard to the facts and
circumstances of the case, the imposition of fine only would meet the
ends of justice.]
CrPC Section 207. Supply to the accused of copy of police report and other
documents. In any case where the proceeding has been instituted on a
police report, the Magistrate shall without delay furnish to the
accused, free of cost, a copy of each of the following:-
(i) the police report;
(ii) the first information report recorded under section 154;
(iii) the statements recorded under sub- section (3) of section 161 of
all persons whom the prosecution proposes to examine as its witnesses,
excluding therefrom any part in regard to which a request for such
exclusion has been made by the police officer under sub- section (6)
of section 173;
(iv) the confessions and statements, if any, recorded under section
164;
(v) any other document or relevant extract thereof forwarded to the
Magistrate with the police report under sub- section (5) of section
173: Provided that the Magistrate may, after perusing any such part of
a statement as is referred to in clause (iii) and considering the
reasons given by the police officer for the request, direct that a
copy of that part of the statement or of such portion thereof as the
Magistrate thinks proper, shall be furnished to the accused: Provided
further that if the Magistrate is satisfied that any document referred
to in clause (v) is voluminous, he shall, instead of furnishing the
accused with a copy thereof, direct that he will only be allowed to
inspect it either personally or through pleader in Court.
CrPC Section 208. Supply of copies of statements and documents to accused in
other cases triable by Court of Session. Where, in a case instituted
otherwise than on a police report, it appears to the Magistrate issuing
process under section 204 that the offence is triable exclusively by the
Court of Session, the Magistrate shall without delay furnish to the
accused, free of cost, a copy of each of the following:-
(i) the statements recorded under section 200 or section 202, of all
persons examined by the Magistrate;
1. Ins. by Act 45 of 1978, s, 18 (w, e. f, 18- 12- 1978 ).
(ii) the statements and confessions, if any, recorded under section
161 or section 164;
(iii) any documents produced before the Magistrate on which the
prosecution proposes to rely: Provided that if the Magistrate is
satisfied that any such document is voluminous, he shall, instead of
furnishing the accused with a copy thereof, direct that he will only
be allowed to inspect it either personally or through pleader in
Court.
CrPC Section 209. Commitment of case to Court of Session when offence is
triable exclusively by it. When in a case instituted on a police report
or otherwise, the accused appears or is brought before the Magistrate
and it appears to the Magistrate that the offence is triable exclusively
by the Court of Session, he shall-
(a) 1 commit, after complying with the provisions of
section 207 or section 208, as the case may be, the case to the Court
of Session, and subject to the provisions of this Code relating to
bail, remand the accused to custody until such commitment has been
made;]
(b) subject to the provisions of this Code relating to bail, remand
the accused to custody during, and until the conclusion of, the trial;
(c) send to that Court the record of the case and the documents and
articles, if any, which are to be produced in evidence;
(d) notify the Public Prosecutor of the commitment of the case to the
Court of Session.
CrPC Section 210. Procedure to be followed when there is a complaint case and
police investigation in respect of the same offence.
(1) When in a case instituted otherwise than on a police report
(hereinafter referred to as a complaint case), it is made to appear to
the Magistrate, during the course of the inquiry or trial held by him,
that an investigation by the police is in progress in relation to the
offence which is the subject- matter of the inquiry or trial held by
him, the Magistrate shall stay the proceedings of such inquiry or
trial and call for a report on the matter from the police officer
conducting the investigation.
(2) If a report is made by the investigating police officer under
section 173 and on such report cognizance of any offence is taken by
the Magistrate against any person who is an accused in the complaint
case, the Magistrate shall inquire into or try together the complaint
case and
the case arising out of the police report as if both the cases were
instituted on a police report.
1. Subs. by Act 45 of 1978, s. 19, for cl. (a) (w. e. f. 18- 12-
1978 ).
(3) If the police report does not relate to any accused in the
complaint case or if the Magistrate does not take cognizance of any
offence on the police report, he shall proceed with the inquiry or
trial, which was stayed by him, in accordance with the provisions of
this Code. CHAP THE CHARGE. CHAPTER XVII THE CHARGE A.- Form of
charges
CrPC Section 211. Contents of charge.
(1) Every charge under this Code shall state the offence with which
the accused is charged.
(2) If the law which creates the offence gives it any specific- name,
the offence may be described in the charge by that name only.
(3) If the law which creates the offence does not give it any specific
name, so much of the definition of the offence must be stated as to
give the accused notice of the matter with which he is charged.
(4) The law and section of the law against which the offence is said
to have been committed shall be mentioned in the charge.
(5) The fact that the charge is made is equivalent to a statement that
every legal condition required by law to constitute the offence
charged was fulfilled in the particular case.
(6) The charge shall be written in the language of the Court.
(7) If the accused, having been previously convicted of any offence,
is liable, by reason of such previous conviction, to enhanced
punishment, or to punishment of a different kind, for a subsequent
offence, and it is intended to prove such previous conviction for the
purpose of affecting the punishment which the Court may think fit to
award for the subsequent offence, the fact, date and place of the
previous conviction shall be stated in the charge; and if such
statement has been omitted, the Court may add it at any time before
sentence is passed. Illustrations
(a) A is charged with the murder of B. This is equivalent to a
statement that A’ s act fell within the definition of murder given
in sections 299 and 300 of the Indian Penal Code (45 of 1860 ); that
it did not fall within any of the general exceptions of the said
Code; and that it did not fall within any of the five exceptions to
section 300, or that, if it did fall within Exception 1, one or
other of the three provisos to that exception applied to it.
(b) A is charged under section 326 of the Indian Penal Code (45 of
1860 ), with voluntarily causing grievous hurt to B by means of an
instrument for shooting. This is equivalent to a statement that the
case was not provided for by section 335 of the said Code-, and that
the general exceptions did not apply to it.
(c) A is accused of murder, cheating, theft, extortion, adultery or
criminal intimidation, or using a false property- mark. The charge
may state that A committed murder, or cheating, or theft, or
extortion, or adultery, or criminal intimidation, or that he used a
false property- mark, without reference to the definitions of those
crimes contained in the Indian Penal Code (45 of 1860 ); but the
sections under which the offence is punishable must, in each
instance, be referred to in the charge.
(d) A is charged under section 184 of the Indian Penal Code (45 of
1860 ) with intentionally obstructing a sale of property offered for
sale by the lawful authority of a public servant. The charge should
be in those words.
CrPC Section 212. Particulars as to time, place and person.
(1) The charge shall contain such particulars as to the time and place
of the alleged offence, and the person (if any) against whom, or the
thing (if any) in respect of which, it was committed, as are
reasonably sufficient to give the accused notice of the matter with
which he is charged.
(2) When the accused is charged with criminal breach of trust or
dishonest misappropriation of money or other movable property, It
shall be sufficient to specify the gross sum or, as the case may be,
describe the movable property in respect of which the offence is
alleged to have been committed, and the dates between which the
offence is alleged to have been committed, without specifying
particular items or exact dates, and the charge so framed shall be
deemed to be a charge of one offence within the meaning of section
219; Provided that the time included between the first and last of
such dates shall not exceed one year.
CrPC Section 213. When manner of committing offence must be stated. When the
nature of the case is such that the particulars mentioned in sections
211 and 212 do not give the accused sufficient notice of the matter with
which he is charged, the charge shall also contain such particulars of
the manner in which the alleged offence was committed as will be
sufficient for that purpose. Illustrations
(a) A is accused of the theft of a certain article at a certain time
and place. The charge need not set out the manner in which the theft
was effected.
(b) A is accused of cheating B at a given time and place. The charge
must set out the manner in which A cheated B.
(c) A is accused of giving false evidence at a given time and place.
The charge must set out that portion of the evidence given by A which
is alleged to be false.
(d) A is accused of obstructing B, a public servant, in the discharge
of his public functions at a given time and place. The charge must set
out the manner in which A obstructed B in the discharge of his
functions.
(e) A is accused of the murder of B at a given time and place. The
charge need not state the manner in which A murdered B.
(f) A is accused of disobeying a direction of the law with intent to
save B from punishment. The charge must set out the disobedience
charged and the law infringed.
CrPC Section 214. Words in charge taken in sense of law under which offence
is punishable. In every charge words used in describing an offence shall
be deemed to have been used in the sense attached to them respectively
by the law under which such offence is punishable.
CrPC Section 215. Effect of errors. No error in stating either the offence or
the particulars required to be stated in the charge, and no omission to
state the offence or those particulars, shall be regarded at any stage
of the case as material, unless the accused was in fact misled by such
error or omission, and it has occasioned a failure of justice.
Illustrations
(a) A is charged under section 242 of the Indian Penal Code (45 of
1860 ), with” having been in possession of counterfeit coin, having
known at the time when he became possessed thereof that such coin was
counterfeit,” the word” fraudulently” being omitted in the charge.
Unless it appears that A was in fact misled by this omission, the
error shall not be regarded as material.
(b) A is charged with cheating B, and the manner in which he cheated B
is not set out in the charge, or is set out incorrectly. A defends
himself, calls witnesses and gives his own account of the transaction.
The Court may infer from this that the omission to set out the manner
of the cheating is not material.
(c) A is charged with cheating B, and the manner in which he cheated B
is not set out in the charge. There were many transactions between A
and B, and A had no means of knowing to which of them the charge
referred, and offered no defence. The Court may inter from such facts
that the omission to set out the manner of the cheating was, in the
case, a material error.
(d) A is charged with the murder of Khoda Baksh on the 21st January,
1882 . In fact, the murdered person’ s name was Haidar Baksh and the
date of the murder was the 20th January, 1882 . A was never charged
with any murder but one, and had heard the inquiry before the
Magistrate, which referred exclusively to the case of Haidar Baksh:
The Court may infer from these facts that A was not misled, and that
the error in the charge was immaterial.
(e) A was charged with murdering Haidar Baksh on the 20th January,
1882 , and Khoda Baksh (who tried to arrest him for that murder) on
the 21st January 1882 . When charged for the murder of Haider Baksh,
he was tried for the murder of Khoda Baksh. The witnesses present in
his defence were witnesses in the case of Haidar Baksh. The Court may
infer from this that A was misled, and that the error was material.
CrPC Section 216. Court may alter charge.
(1) Any Court may alter or add to any charge at any time before
judgment is pronounced.
(2) Every such alteration or addition shall be read and explained to
the accused.
(3) If the alteration or addition to a charge is such that proceeding
immediately with the trial is not likely, in the opinion of the Court,
to prejudice the accused in his defence or the prosecutor in the
conduct of the case, the Court may, in its discretion, after such
alteration or addition has been made, proceed with the trial as if the
altered or added charge had been the original charge.
(4) If the alteration or addition is such that proceeding immediately
with the trial is likely, in the opinion of the Court, to prejudice
the accused or the prosecutor as aforesaid, the Court may either
direct a new trial or adjourn the trial for such period as may be
necessary.
(5) If the offence stated in the altered or added charge is one for
the prosecution of which previous sanction is necessary, the case
shall not be proceeded with until such sanction is obtained, unless
sanction has been already obtained for a prosecution on the same facts
as those on which the altered or added charge is founded.
CrPC Section 217. Recall of witnesses when charge altered. Whenever a charge
is altered or added to by the Court after the commencement of the trial,
the prosecutor and the accused shall be allowed-
(a) to recall or re- summon, and examine with reference to such
alteration or addition, any witness who may have been examined, unless
the Court, for reasons to be recorded in writing, considers that the
prosecutor or the accused, as the case may be, desires to recall or
re- examine such witness for the purpose of vexation or delay or for
defeating the ends of justice;
(b) also to call any further witness whom the Court may think to be
material. B.- Joinder of charges
CrPC Section 218. Separate charges for distinct offences.
(1) For every distinct offence of which any person is accused there
shall be a separate charge, and every such charge shall be tried
separately: Provided that where the accused person, by an application
in writing, so desires and the Magistrate is of opinion that such
person is not likely to be prejudiced thereby, the Magistrate may try
together all or any number of the charges framed against such person.
(2) Nothing in sub- section (1) shall affect the operation of the
provisions of sections 219, 220, 221 and 223. Illustration A is
accused of a theft on one occasion, and of causing grievous hurt on
another occasion. A must be separately charged and separately tried
for the theft and causing grievous hurt.
CrPC Section 219. Three offences of same kind within year may be charged
together.
(1) When a person is accused of more offences than one of the same
kind committed within the space of twelve months from the first to the
last of such offences, whether in respect of the same person or not,
he may be charged with, and tried at one trial for, any number of them
not exceeding three.
(2) Offences are of the same kind when they are punishable with the
same amount of punishment under the same section of the Indian Penal
Code (45 of 1860 ) or of any special or local law: Provided that, for
the purposes of this section, an offence punishable under section 379
of the Indian Penal Code (45 of 1860 ) shall be deemed to be an
offence of the same kind as an offence punishable under section 380 of
the said Code, and that an offence punishable under any section of the
said Code, or of any special or local law, shall be deemed to be an
offence of the same kind as an attempt to commit such offence, when
such an attempt is an offence.
CrPC Section 220. Trial for more than one offence.
(1) If, in one series of acts so connected together as to form the
same transaction, more offences than one are committed by the same
person, he may be charged with, and tried at one trial for, every such
offence.
(2) When a person charged with one or more offences of criminal breach
of trust or dishonest misappropriation of property as provided in sub-
section (2) of section 212 or in sub- section (1) of section 219, is
accused of committing, for the purpose of facilitating or concealing
the commission of that offence or those offences, one or more offences
of falsification of accounts, he may be charged with, and tried at one
trial for, every such offence.
(3) If the acts alleged constitute an offence falling within two or
more separate definitions of any law in force for the time being by
which offences are defined or punished, the person accused of them may
be charged with, and tried at one trial for, each of such offences.
(4) If several acts, of which one or more than one would by itself or
themselves constitute an offence, constitute when combined a different
offence, the person accused of them may be charged with, and tried at
one trial for the offence constituted by such acts when combined, and
for any offence constituted by any one, or more, of such acts.
(5) Nothing contained in this section shall affect section 71 of the
Indian Penal Code (45 of 1860 ). Illustrations to sub- section (1)
(a) A rescues B, a person in lawful custody, and in so doing causes
grievous hurt to C, a constable in whose custody B was. A may be
charged with, and convicted of, offences under sections 225 and 333
of the Indian Penal Code (45 of 1860 ).
(b) A commits house- breaking by day with intent to commit adultery,
and commits, in the house so entered, adultery with B’ s wife. A may
be separately charged with, and convicted of, offences under
sections 454 and 497 of the Indian Penal Code (45 of 1860 ).
(c) A entices B, the wife of C, away from C, with intent to commit
adultery with B, and then commits adultery with her. A may be
separately charged with, and convicted of, offences under sections
498 and 497 of the Indian Penal Code (45 of 1860 ).
(d) A has in his possession several seals, knowing them to be
counterfeit and intending to use them for the purpose of committing
several forgeries punishable under section 466 of the Indian Penal
Code (45 of 1860 ). A may be separately charged with, and convicted
of, the possession of each seal under section 473 of the Indian
Penal Code (45 of 1860 ).
(e) With intent to cause injury to B, A institutes a criminal
proceeding against him, knowing that there is no just or lawful
ground for such proceeding, and also falsely accuses B of having
committed an offence, knowing that there is no just or lawful ground
for such charge. A may be separately charged with, and convicted of,
two offences under section 211 of the Indian Penal Code (45 of 1860
).
(f) A, with intent to cause injury to B, falsely accuses him of
having committed an offence, knowing that there is no just or lawful
ground for such charge. On the trial, A gives false evidence against
B, intending thereby to cause B to be convicted of a capital
offence. A may be separately charged with, and convicted of,
offences under sections 211 and 194 of the Indian Penal Code (45 of
1860 ).
(g) A, with six others, commits the offences of rioting, grievous
hurt and assaulting a public servant endeavouring in the discharge
of his duty as such to suppress the riot. A may be separately
charged with, and convicted of, offences under sections 147, 325 and
152 of the Indian Penal Code (45 of 1860 ).
(h) A threatens B, C and D at the same time with injury to their
persons with Intent to cause alarm to them. A may be separately
charged with, and convicted of, each of the three offences under
section 506 of the Indian Penal Code (45 of 1860 ). The separate
charges referred to in Illustrations (a) to (h), respectively, may
be tried at the same time. Illustrations to sub- section (3)
(i) A wrongfully strikes B with a cane. A may be separately charged
with and convicted of, offences under sections 352 and 323 of the
Indian Penal Code (45 of 1860 ).
(j) Several stolen sacks of corn are made over to A and B, who knew
they are stolen property, for the purpose of concealing them. A and
B thereupon voluntarily assist each other to conceal the sacks at
the bottom of a grain- pit. A
and B may be separately charged with, and convicted of, offences
under sections 411 and 414 of the Indian Penal Code (45 of 1860 ).
(k) A exposes her child with the knowledge that she is thereby
likely to cause its death. The child dies in consequence of such
exposure. A may be separately charged with, and convicted of,
offences under sections 317 and 304 of the Indian Penal Code (45 of
1860 ).
(l) A dishonestly uses a forged document as genuine evidence, in
order to convict B, a public servant, of an offence under section
167 of the Indian Penal Code. A may be separately charged with, and
convicted of, offences under sections 471 (read with section 466)
and 196 of that Code (45 of 1860 ). Illustration to sub- section (4)
(m) A commits robbery on B, and in doing so voluntarily causes hurt
to him. A may be separately charged with, and convicted of, offences
under sections 323, 392 and 394 of the Indian Penal Code. (45 of
1860 .)
CrPC Section 221. Where it is doubtful what offence has been committed.
(1) If a single act or series of acts is of such a nature that it is
doubtful which of several offences the facts which can be proved will
constitute, the accused may be charged with having committed all or
any of such offences, and any number of such charges may be tried at
once; or he may be charged in the alternative with having committed
some one of the said offences.
(2) If in such a case the accused is charged with one offence, and it
appears in evidence that he committed a different offence for which he
might have been charged under the provisions of sub- section (1), he
may be convicted of the offence which he is shown to have committed,
although he was not charged with it. Illustrations
(a) A is accused of an act which may amount to theft, or receiving
stolen property, or criminal breach of trust or cheating. He may be
charged with theft, receiving stolen property, criminal breach of
trust and cheating, or he may be charged with having committed
theft, or receiving stolen property, or criminal breach of trust or
cheating.
(b) In the case mentioned, A is only charged with theft. It appears
that he committed the offence of criminal breach of trust, or that
of receiving stolen goods. He may be convicted of criminal breach of
trust or of receiving stolen goods (as the case may be), though he
was not charged with such offence.
(c) A states on oath before the Magistrate that he saw B hit C with
a club. Before the Sessions Court A states on oath that B never hit
C. A may be charged in the alternative and convicted of
intentionally giving false evidence, although it cannot be proved
which of these contradictory statements was false.
CrPC Section 222. When offence proved included in offence charged.
(1) When a person is charged with an offence consisting of several
particulars, a combination of some only of which constitutes a
complete minor offence, and such combination is proved, but the
remaining particulars are not proved, he may be convicted of the minor
offence though he was not charged with it.
(2) When a person is charged with an offence and facts are proved
which reduce it to a minor offence, he may be convicted of the minor
offence, although he is not charged with it.
(3) When a person is charged with an offence, he may be convicted of
an attempt to commit such offence although the attempt is not
separately charged.
(4) Nothing in this section shall be deemed to authorise a conviction
of any minor offence where the conditions requisite for the initiation
of proceedings in respect of that minor offence have not been
satisfied. Illustrations
(a) A is charged, under section 407 of the Indian Penal Code (45 of
1860 ), with criminal breach of trust in respect of property
entrusted to him as a carrier. It appears, that he did commit
criminal breach of trust under section 406 of that Code in respect
of the property, but that it was not entrusted to him as a carrier.
He may be convicted of criminal breach of trust under the said
section 406.
(b) A is charged, under section 325 of the Indian Penal Code (45 of
1860 ), with causing grievous hurt. He proves that he acted on grave
and sudden provocation. He may be convicted under section 335 of
that Code.
CrPC Section 223. What persons may be charged jointly. The following persons
may be charged and tried together, namely:-
(a) persons accused of the same offence committed in the course same
transaction;
(b) person accused of an offence and persons accused of abetment of,
or attempt to commit, such offence;
(c) person accused of more than one offence of the same kind, within
the meaning of section 219 committed by them jointly within the period
of twelve months;
(d) persons accused of different offences committed in the course of
the same transaction;
(e) persons accused of an offence which includes theft, extortion,
cheating, or criminal misappropriation, and persons accused of
receiving or retaining, or assisting in the disposal or concealment
of, property possession of which is alleged to have been transferred
by any such offence committed by the first named persons, or of
abetment of or attempting to commit any such last- named offence;
(f) persons accused of offences under sections 411 and 414 of the
Indian Penal Code (45 of 1860 ). or either of those sections in
respect of
stolen property the possession of which has been transferred by one
offence;
(g) persons accused of any offence under Chapter XII of the Indian
Penal Code relating to counterfeit coin and persons accused of any
other offence under the said Chapter relating to the same coin, or of
abetment of or attempting to commit any such offence; and the
provisions contained in the former part of this Chapter shall, so far
as may be, apply to all such charges: Provided that where a number of
persons are charged with separate offences and such persons do not
fall within any of the categories specified in this section, the
Magistrate may, if such persons by an application in writing, so
desire, and if he is satisfied that such persons would not be
prejudicially affected thereby, and it is expedient so to do, try all
such persons together.
CrPC Section 224. Withdrawal of remaining charges on conviction on one of
several charges. When a charge containing more heads than one is framed
against the same person, and when a conviction has been had on one or
more of them, the complainant, or the officer conducting the
prosecution, may, with the consent of the Court, withdraw the remaining
charge or charges, or the Court of its own accord may stay the inquiry
into, or trial of, such charge or charges and such withdrawal shall have
the effect of an acquittal on such charge or charges, unless the
conviction be set aside, in which case the said Court (subject to the
order of the Court setting aside the conviction) may proceed with the
inquiry into, or trial of, the charge or charges so withdrawn. CHAP
TRIAL BEFORE A COURT OF SESSION. CHAPTER XVIII TRIAL BEFORE A COURT OF
SESSION
CrPC Section 225. Trial to be conducted by Public Prosecutor. In every trial
before a Court of Session, the prosecution shall be conducted by a
Public Prosecutor.
CrPC Section 226. Opening case for prosecution. When the accused appears or
is brought before the Court in pursuance of a commitment of the case
under section 209, the prosecutor shall open his case by describing the
charge brought against the accused and stating by what evidence he
proposes to prove the guilt of the accused.
CrPC Section 227. Discharge. If, upon consideration of the record of the case
and the documents submitted therewith, and after hearing the submissions
of the accused and the prosecution in this behalf, the Judge considers
that there is not sufficient ground for proceeding against the accused,
he shall discharge the accused and record his reasons for so doing.
CrPC Section 228. Framing of charge.
(1) If, after such consideration and hearing as aforesaid, the Judge
is of opinion that there is ground for presuming that the accused has
committed an offence which-
(a) is not exclusively triable by the Court of Session, he may,
frame a charge against the accused and, by order, transfer the case
for trial to the Chief Judicial Magistrate, and thereupon the Chief
Judicial Magistrate shall try the offence in accordance with the
procedure for the trial of warrant- cases instituted on a police
report;
(b) is exclusively triable by the Court, he shall frame in writing a
charge against the accused.
(2) Where the Judge frames any charge under clause (b) of sub- section
(1), the charge shall be read and explained to the accused and the
accused shall be asked whether he pleads guilty of the offence charged
or claims to be tried.
CrPC Section 229. Conviction on plea of guilty. If the accused pleads guilty,
the Judge shall record the plea and may, in his discretion, convict him
thereon.
CrPC Section 230. Date for prosecution evidence. If the accused refuses to
plead, or does not plead, or claims to be tried or is not convicted
under section 229, the Judge shall fix a date for the examination of
witnesses, and may, on the application of the prosecution, issue any
process for compelling the attendance of any witness or the production
of any document or other thing.
CrPC Section 231. Evidence for prosecution.
(1) On the date so fixed, the Judge shall proceed to take all such
evidence as may be produced in support of the prosecution.
(2) The Judge may, in his discretion, permit the cross- examination of
any witness to be deferred until any other witness or witnesses have
been examined or recall any witness for further cross- examination.
CrPC Section 232. Acquittal. If, after taking the evidence for the
prosecution, examining the accused and hearing the prosecution and the
defence on the point, the
Judge considers that there is no evidence that the accused committed the
offence, the Judge shall record an order of acquittal.
CrPC Section 233. Entering upon defence.
(1) Where the accused is not acquitted under section 232, he shall be
called upon to enter on his defence and adduce any evidence he may
have in support thereof.
(2) If the accused puts in any written statement, the Judge shall file
it with the record.
(3) If the accused applies for the issue of any process for compelling
the attendance of any witness or the production of any document or
thing, the Judge shall issue such process unless he considers, for
reasons to be recorded, that such application should be refused on the
ground that it is made for the purpose of vexation or delay or for
defeating the ends of justice.
CrPC Section 234. Arguments. When the examination of the witnesses (if any)
for the defence is complete, the prosecutor shall sum up his case and
the accused or his pleader shall be entitled to reply: Provided that
where any point of law is raised by the accused or his pleader, the
prosecution may, with the permission of the Judge, make his submissions
with regard to such point of law.
CrPC Section 235. Judgment of acquittal or conviction.
(1) After hearing arguments and points of law (if any), the Judge
shall give a judgment in the case.
(2) If the accused is convicted, the Judge shall, unless he proceeds
in accordance with the provisions of section 360, hear the accused on
the question of sentence, and then pass sentence on him according to
law.
CrPC Section 236. Previous conviction. In a case where a previous conviction
is charged under the provisions of sub- section (7) of section 211, and
the accused does not admit that he has been previously convicted as
alleged in the charge, the Judge may, after he has convicted the said
accused under section 229 or section 235, take evidence in respect of
the alleged previous conviction, and shall record a finding thereon:
Provided that no such charge shall be read out by the Judge nor shall
the accused be asked to plead thereto nor shall the previous conviction
be referred to by the prosecution or in any evidence adduced by it,
unless and until the accused has been convicted under section 229 or
section 235.
CrPC Section 237. Procedure in cases instituted under section 199 (2).
(1) A Court of Session taking cognizance of an offence under sub-
section (2) of section 199 shall try the case in accordance with the
procedure for the trial of warrant- cases instituted otherwise than on
a police report before a Court of Magistrate: Provided that the person
against whom the offence is alleged to have been committed shall,
unless the Court of Session, for reasons to be recorded, otherwise
directs, be examined as a witness for the prosecution.
(2) Every trial under this section shall be held in camera if either
party thereto so desires or if the Court thinks fit so to do.
(3) If, in any such case, the Court discharges or acquits all or any
of the accused and is of opinion that there was no reasonable cause
for making the accusation against them or any of them, it may, by its
order of discharge or acquittal, direct the person against whom the
offence was alleged to have been committed (other than the President,
Vice- President or the Governor of a State or the Administrator of a
Union territory) to show cause why he should not pay compensation to
such accused or to each or any of such accused, when there are more
than one.
(4) The Court shall record and consider any cause which may be shown
by the person so directed, and if it is satisfied that there was no
reasonable cause for making the accusation, it may, for reasons to be
recorded, make an order that compensation to such amount not exceeding
one thousand rupees, as it may determine, be paid by such person to
the accused or to each or any of them.
(5) Compensation awarded under sub- section (4) shall be recovered as
if it were a fine imposed by a Magistrate.
(6) No person who has been directed to pay compensation under
subsection (4) shall, by reason of such order, be exempted from any
civil or criminal liability in respect of the complaint made under
this section; Provided that any amount paid to an accused person under
this section shall be taken into account in awarding compensation to
such person in any subsequent civil suit relating to the same matter.
(7) The person who has been ordered under sub- section (4) to pay
compensation may appeal from the order, in so far as it relates to the
payment of compensation, to the High Court.
(8) When an order for payment of compensation to an accused person is
made, the compensation shall not be paid to him before the period
allowed for the presentation of the appeal has elapsed, or, if an
appeal is presented, before the appeal has been decided.
CHAP TRIAL OF WARRANT- CASES BY MAGISTRATES. CHAPTER XIX TRIAL OF
WARRANT- CASES BY MAGISTRATES A.- Cases instituted on a police report
CrPC Section 238. Compliance with section 207. When, in any warrant- case
instituted on a police report, the accused appears or is brought before
a Magistrate at the commencement of the trial, the Magistrate shall
satisfy himself that he has complied with the provisions of section 207.
CrPC Section 239. When accused shall be discharged. If, upon considering the
police report and the documents sent with it under section 173 and
making such examination, if any, of the accused as the Magistrate thinks
necessary and after giving the prosecution and the accused an
opportunity of being heard, the Magistrate considers the charge against
the accused to be groundless, he shall discharge the accused, and record
his reasons for so doing
CrPC Section 240. Framing of charge.
(1) If, upon such consideration, examination, if any, and hearing, the
Magistrate is of opinion that there is ground for presuming that the
accused has committed an offence triable under this Chapter, which
such Magistrate is competent to try and which, in his opinion, could
be adequately punished by him, he shall frame in writing a charge
against the accused.
(2) The charge shall then be read and explained to the accused, and he
shall be asked whether he pleads guilty of the offence charged or
claims to be tried.
CrPC Section 241. Conviction on plea of guilty, the accused pleads guilty,
the Magistrate shall record the plea and may, in his discretion, convict
him thereon.
CrPC Section 242. Evidence for prosecution.
(1) If the accused refuses to plead or does not plead, or claims to be
tried or the Magistrate does not convict the accused under section
241, the Magistrate shall fix a date for the examination of witnesses.
(2) The Magistrate may, on the application of the prosecution, issue a
summons to any of its witnesses directing him to attend or to produce
any document or other thing.
(3) On the date so fixed, the Magistrate shall proceed to take all
such evidence as may be produced in support of the prosecution:
Provided that the Magistrate may permit the cross- examination of any
witness to be deferred until any other witness or witnesses have been
examined or recall any witness for further cross- examination.
CrPC Section 243. Evidence for defence.
(1) The accused shall then be called upon to enter upon his defence
and produce his evidence; and if the accused puts in any written
statement, the Magistrate shall file it with the record.
(2) If the accused, after he has entered upon his defence, applies to
the Magistrate to issue any process for compelling the attendance of
any witness for the purpose of examination or cross- examination, or
the production of any document or other thing, the Magistrate shall
issue such. process unless he considers that such application should
be refused on the ground that it is made for the purpose of vexation
or delay or for defeating the ends of justice and such ground shall be
recorded by him in writing: Provided that, when the accused has cross-
examined or had the opportunity of cross- examining any witness before
entering on his defence, the attendance of such witness shall not be
compelled under this section, unless the Magistrate is satisfied that
it is necessary for the ends of justice.
(3) The Magistrate may, before summoning any witness on an application
under sub- section (2), require that the reasonable expenses incurred
by the witness in attending for the purposes of the trial be deposited
in Court. B.- Cases instituted otherwise than on police report
CrPC Section 244. Evidence for prosecution.
(1) When, in any warrant- case instituted otherwise than on a police
report, the accused appears or is brought before a Magistrate, the
Magistrate shall proceed to hear the prosecution and take all such
evidence as may be produced in support of the prosecution.
(2) The Magistrate may, on the application of the prosecution, issue a
summons to any of its witnesses directing him to attend or to produce
any document or other thing.
CrPC Section 245. When accused shall be discharged.
(1) If, upon taking all the evidence referred to in section 244, the
Magistrate considers, for reasons to be recorded, that no case against
the accused has been made out which, if unrebutted, would warrant his
conviction, the Magistrate shall discharge him.
(2) Nothing in this section shall be deemed to prevent a Magistrate
from discharging the accused at any previous stage of the case if, for
reasons to be recorded by such Magistrate, he considers the charge to
be groundless.
CrPC Section 246. Procedure where accused is not discharged.
(1) If, when such evidence has been taken, or at any previous stage of
the case, the Magistrate is of opinion that there is ground for
presuming that the accused has committed an offence triable under this
Chapter, which such Magistrate is competent to try and which, in his
opinion, could be adequately punished by him, he shall frame in
writing a charge against the accused.
(2) The charge shall then be read and explained to the accused, and he
shall be asked whether he pleads guilty or has any defence to make.
(3) If the accused pleads guilty, the Magistrate shall record the
plea, and may, in his discretion, convict him thereon.
(4) If the accused refuses to plead, or does not plead or claims to be
tried or if the accused is not convicted under sub- section (3), he
shall be required to state, at the commencement of the next hearing of
the case, or, if the Magistrate for reasons to be recorded in writing
so thinks fit, forthwith, whether he wishes to cross- examine any,
and, if so, which, of the witnesses for the prosecution whose evidence
has been taken.
(5) If he says he does so wish, the witnesses named by him shall be
recalled and, after cross- examination and re- examination (if any),
they shall be discharged.
(6) The evidence of any remaining witnesses for the prosecution shall
next be taken, and after cross- examination and re- examination (if
any), they shall also be discharged.
CrPC Section 247. Evidence for defence. The accused shall then be called upon
to enter upon his defence and produce his evidence; and the provisions
of section 243 shall apply to the case. C.- Conclusion of trial
CrPC Section 248. Acquittal or conviction.
(1) If, in any case under this Chapter in which a charge has been
framed, the Magistrate finds the accused not guilty, he shall record
an order of acquittal.
(2) Where, in any case under this Chapter, the Magistrate finds the
accused guilty, but does not proceed in accordance with the provisions
of section 325 or section 360, he shall, after hearing the accused on
the question of sentence, pass sentence upon him according to law.
(3) Where, in any case under this Chapter, a previous conviction is
charged under the provisions of sub- section (7) of section 211 and
the accused does not admit that he has been previously convicted as
alleged in the charge, the Magistrate may, after he has convicted the
said accused, take evidence in respect of the alleged previous
conviction, and shall record a finding thereon: Provided that no such
charge shall be read out by the Magistrate nor shall the accused be
asked to plead thereto nor shall the previous conviction be referred
to by the prosecution or in any evidence adduced by it, unless and
until the accused has been convicted under sub- section (2).
CrPC Section 249. Absence of complainant. When the proceedings have been
instituted upon complaint, and on any day fixed for the hearing of the
case, the complainant is absent, and the offence may be lawfully
compounded or is not a cognizable offence, the Magistrate may, in his
discretion, notwithstanding anything hereinbefore contained, at any time
before the charge has been framed, discharge the accused.
CrPC Section 250. Compensation for accusation without reasonable cause.
(1) If, in any case instituted upon complaint or upon information
given to a police officer or to a Magistrate, one or more persons is
or are accused before a Magistrate of any offence triable by a
Magistrate, and the Magistrate by whom the case is heard discharges or
acquits all or any of the accused, and is of opinion that there was no
reasonable ground for making the accusation against them or any of
them, the Magistrate may, by his order of discharge or acquittal, if
the person upon whose complaint or information the accusation was made
is present, call upon him forthwith to show cause why he should not
pay compensation to such accused or to each or any of such accused
when there are more than one; or, if such person is not present,
direct the issue of a summons to him to appear and show cause as
aforesaid.
(2) The Magistrate shall record and consider any cause which such
complainant or informant may show, and if he is satisfied that there
was no reasonable ground for making the accusation, may, for reasons
to be recorded make an order that compensation to such amount, not
exceeding the amount of fine he is empowered to impose, as he may
determine, be
paid by such complainant or informant to the accused or to each or any
of them.
(3) The Magistrate may, by the order directing payment of the
compensation under sub- section (2), further order that, in default of
payment, the person ordered to pay such compensation shall undergo
simple imprisonment for a period not exceeding thirty days.
(4) When any person is imprisoned under sub- section (3), the
provisions of sections 68 and 69 of the Indian Penal Code (45 of 1860
). shall, so far as may be, apply.
(5) No person who has been directed to pay compensation under this
section shall, by reason of such order, be exempted from any civil or
criminal liability in respect of the complaint made or information
given by him: Provided that any amount paid to an accused person under
this section shall be taken into account in awarding compensation to
such person in any subsequent civil suit relating to the same matter.
(6) A complainant or informant who has been ordered under sub- section
(2) by a Magistrate of the second class to pay compensation exceeding
one hundred rupees, may appeal from the order, as if such complainant
or informant had been convicted on a trial held by such Magistrate.
(7) When an order for payment of compensation to an accused person is
made in a case which is subject to appeal under sub- section (6), the
compensation shall not be paid to him before the period allowed for
the presentation of the appeal has elapsed, or, if an appeal is
presented, before the appeal has been decided; and where such order is
made in a case which is not so subject to appeal the compensation
shall not be paid before the expiration of one month from the date of
the order.
(8) The provisions of this section apply to summons- cases as well as
to warrant- cases. CHAP TRIAL OF SUMMONS- CASES BY MAGISTRATES.
CHAPTER XX TRIAL OF SUMMONS- CASES BY MAGISTRATES
CrPC Section 251. Substance of accusation to be stated. When in a summons-
case the accused appears or is brought before the Magistrate, the
particulars of the offence of which he is accused shall be stated to
him, and he shall be asked whether he pleads guilty or
has any defence to make, but it shall not be necessary to frame a formal
charge.
CrPC Section 252. Conviction on plea of guilty. If the accused pleads guilty,
the Magistrate shall record the plea as nearly as possible in the words
used by the accused and may, in his discretion, convict him thereon.
CrPC Section 253. Conviction on plea of guilty in absence of accused in petty
cases.
(1) Where a summons has been issued under section 206 and the accused
desires to plead guilty to the charge without appearing before the
Magistrate, he shall transmit to the Magistrate, by post or by
messenger, a letter containing his plea and also the amount of fine
specified in the summons.
(2) The Magistrate may, in his discretion, convict the accused in his
absence, on his plea of guilty and sentence him to pay the fine
specified in the summons, and the amount transmitted by the accused
shall be adjusted towards that fine, or where a pleader authorised by
the accused in this behalf pleads guilty on behalf of the accused, the
Magistrate shall record the plea as nearly as possible in the words
used by the pleader and may, in his discretion, convict the accused on
such plea and sentence him as aforesaid.
CrPC Section 254. Procedure when not convicted.
(1) If the Magistrate does not convict the accused under section 252
or section 253, the Magistrate shall proceed to hear the prosecution
and take all such evidence as may be produced in support of the
prosecution, and also to hear the accused and take all such evidence
as he produces in his defence.
(2) The Magistrate may, if he thinks fit, on the application of the
prosecution or the accused, issue a summons to any witness directing
him to attend or to produce any document or other thing.
(3) The Magistrate may, before summoning any witness on such
application require that the reasonable expenses of the witness
incurred in attending for the purposes of the trial be deposited in
Court.
CrPC Section 255. Acquittal or conviction.
(1) If the Magistrate, upon taking the evidence referred to in section
254 and such further evidence, if any, as he may, of his own motion,
cause to be produced, finds the accused not guilty, he shall record an
order of acquittal.
(2) Where the Magistrate does not proceed in accordance with the
provisions of section 325 or section 360, he shall, if he finds the
accused guilty, pass sentence upon him according to law.
(3) A Magistrate may, under section 252 or section 255, convict the
accused of any offence triable under this Chapter, which from the
facts admitted or proved he appears to have committed, whatever may be
the nature of the complaint or summons, if the Magistrate is satisfied
that the accused would not be prejudiced thereby.
CrPC Section 256. Non- appearance or death of complainant.
(1) If the summons has been issued on complaint, and on the day
appointed for the appearance of the accused, or any day subsequent
thereto to which the hearing may be adjourned, the complainant does
not appear, the Magistrate shall, notwithstanding anything
hereinbefore contained, acquit the accused, unless for some reason he
thinks it proper to adjourn the hearing of the case to some other day:
Provided that where the complainant is represented by a pleader or by
the officer conducting the prosecution or where the Magistrate is of
opinion that the personal attendance of the complainant is not
necessary, the Magistrate may dispense with his attendance and proceed
with the case.
(2) The provisions of sub- section (1) shall, so far as may be, apply
also to cases where the non- appearance of the complainant is due to
his death.
CrPC Section 257. Withdrawal of complaint. If a complainant, at any time
before a final order is passed in any case under this Chapter, satisfies
the Magistrate that there are sufficient grounds for permitting him to
withdraw his complaint against the accused, or if there be more than one
accused, against all or any of them, the Magistrate may permit him to
withdraw the same, and shall thereupon acquit the accused against whom
the complaint is so withdrawn.
CrPC Section 258. Power to stop proceedings in certain cases. In any summons-
case instituted otherwise than upon complaint, a Magistrate of the first
class or, with the previous sanction of the Chief Judicial Magistrate,
any other Judicial Magistrate, may, for reasons to be recorded by him,
stop the proceedings at any stage without pronouncing any judgment and
where such stoppage of proceedings is made after the evidence of the
principal witnesses has been recorded, pronounce a judgment of
acquittal, and in any other case, release the accused, and such release
shall have the effect of discharge.
CrPC Section 259. Power of Court to convert summons- cases into warrant-
cases. When in the course of the trial of a summons- case relating to an
offence punishable with imprisonment for a term exceeding six months it
appears to the Magistrate that in the interests of justice, the offence
should be tried in accordance with the procedure for the trial of
warrant- cases, such Magistrate may proceed to re- hear the case in the
manner provided by this Code for the trial of warrant- cases and may
recall an witness who may have been examined. CHAP SUMMARY TRIALS.
CHAPTER XXI SUMMARY TRIALS
CrPC Section 260. Power to try summarily.
(1) Notwithstanding anything contained in this Code-
(a) any Chief Judicial Magistrate;
(b) any Metropolitan Magistrate;
(c) any Magistrate of the first class specially empowered in this
behalf by the High Court, may, if he thinks fit, try in a summary
way all or any of the following offences:-
(i) offences not punishable with death, imprisonment for life or
imprisonment for a term exceeding two years;
(ii) theft, under section 379, section 380 or section 381 of the
India Penal Code (45 of 1860 ), where the value of the property
stolen does no exceed two hundred rupees;
(iii) receiving or retaining stolen property, under section 411 of
the Indian Penal Code (45 of 1860 ), where the value of the
property does not exceed two hundred rupees;
(iv) assisting in the concealment or disposal of stolen property
under section 414 of the Indian Panel Code (45 of 1860 ), where
the value of such property does not exceed two hundred rupees;
(v) offences under sections 454 and 456 of the Indian Penal Code
(45 of 1860 );
(vi) insult with intent to provoke a breach of the peace, under
section 504, and criminal intimidation, under section 506 of the
Indian Penal Code (45 of 1860 );
(vii) abetment of any of the foregoing offences;
(viii) an attempt to commit any of the foregoing offences, when
such attempt is an offence;
(ix) any offence constituted by an act in respect of which a
complaint may be made under section 20 of the Cattle- trespass
Act, 1871 (1 of 1871 ).
(2) When, in the course of a summary trial it appears to the
Magistrate that the nature of the case is such that it is undesirable
to try it summarily, the Magistrate shall recall any witnesses who may
have been examined and proceed to re- hear the case in the manner
provided by this Code.
CrPC Section 261. Summary trial by magistrate of the second class. The High
Court may confer on any Magistrate invested with the powers of a
Magistrate of the second class power to try summarily any offence which
is punishable only with fine or with imprisonment for a term not
exceeding six months with or without fine, and any abetment of or
attempt to commit any such offence.
CrPC Section 262. Procedure for summary trials.
(1) In trials under this Chapter, the procedure specified in this Code
for the trial of summons- ease shall be followed except as hereinafter
mentioned.
(2) No sentence of imprisonment for a term exceeding three months
shall be passed in the case of any conviction under this Chapter.
CrPC Section 263. Record in summary trials. In every case tried summarily,
the Magistrate shall enter, in such form as the State Government may
direct, the following particulars, namely:-
(a) the serial number of the case;
(b) the date of the commission of the offence;
(c) the date of the report or complaint;
(d) the name of the complainant (if any);
(e) the name, parentage and residence of the accused;
(f) the offence complained of and the offence (if any) proved, and in
cases coming under clause (ii), clause (iii) or clause (iv) of sub-
section (1) of section 260, the value of the property in respect of
which the offence has been committed;
(g) the plea of the accused and his examination (if any);
(h) the finding;
(i) the sentence or other final order the date on which proceedings
terminated.
CrPC Section 264. Judgement in cases tried summarily. In every case tried
summarily in which the accused does not plead guilty, the Magistrate
shall record the substance of the evidence and a judgment containing a
brief statement of the reasons for the finding.
Language of record and judgement.
CrPC Section 265. Language of record and judgement.
(1) Every such record and judgment shall be written in the language of
the Court.
(2) The High Court may authorise any Magistrate empowered to try
offences summarily to prepare the aforesaid record or judgment or both
by means of an officer appointed in this behalf by the Chief Judicial
Magistrate, and the record or judgment so prepared shall be signed by
such Magistrate. CHAP ATTENDANCE OF PERSONS CONFINED OR DETAINED IN
PRISONS. CHAPTER XXII ATTENDANCE OF PERSONS CONFINED OR DETAINED IN
PRISONS
CrPC Section 266. Definitions. In this Chapter,-
(a) “detained” includes detained under any law providing for
preventive detention;
(b) “prison” includes,-
(i) any place which has been declared by the State Government, by
general or special order, to be a subsidiary jail;
(ii) any reformatory, Borstal institution or other institution of a
like nature.
CrPC Section 267. Power to require attendance of prisoners.
(1) Whenever, in the course of an inquiry, trial or other proceeding
under this Code, it appears to a Criminal Court,-
(a) that a person confined or detained in a prison should be brought
before the Court for answering to a charge of an offence, or for the
purpose of any proceedings against him, or
(b) that it is necessary for the ends of justice to examine such
person as a witness, the Court may make an order requiring the
officer in charge of the prison to produce such person before the
Court for answering to the charge or for the purpose of such
proceeding or, as the case may be, for giving evidence.
(2) Where an order under sub- section (1) is made by a Magistrate of
the second class, it shall not be forwarded to, or acted upon by, the
officer in charge of the prison unless it is countersigned by the
Chief Judicial Magistrate to whom such Magistrate is subordinate.
(3) Every order submitted for countersigning under sub- section (2)
shall be accompanied by a statement of the facts which, in the opinion
of Magistrate, render the order necessary, and the Chief Judicial
Magistrate to whom it is submitted may, after considering such
statement, decline to countersign the order.
CrPC Section 268. Power of State Government to exclude certain persons from
operation of section 267.
(1) The State Government may, at any time, having regard to the
matters specified in sub- section (2), by general or special order,
direct that any person or class of persons shall not be removed from
the prison in which he or they may be confined or detained, and
thereupon, so long as the order remains in force, no order made under
section 267, whether before or after the order of the State
Government, shall have effect in respect of such person or class of
persons.
(2) Before making an order under sub- section (1), the State
Government shall have regard to the following matters, namely:-
(a) the nature of the offence for which, or the grounds on which,
the person or class of persons has been ordered to be confined or
detained in prison;
(b) the likelihood of the disturbance of public order if the person
or class of persons is allowed to be removed from the prison;
(c) the public interest, generally.
CrPC Section 269. Officer in charge of prison to abstain from carrying out
certain contingencies. Where the person in respect of whom an order is
made under section 267-
(a) is by reason of sickness or infirmity Unfit to be removed from the
prison; or
(b) is under committal for trial or under remand pending trial or
pending a preliminary investigation; or
(c) is in custody for a period which would expire before the
expiration of the time required for complying with the order and for
taking him back to the prison in which he is confined or detained; or
(d) is a person to whom an order made by the State Government under
section 268 applies,
the officer in charge of the prison shall abstain from carrying out
the Court’ s order and shall send to the Court a statement of reasons
for so abstaining: Provided that where the attendance of such person
is required for giving evidence at a place not more than twenty- five
kilometres distant from the prison, the officer in charge of the
prison shall not so abstain for the reason mentioned in clause (b).
CrPC Section 270. Prisoner to be brought to Court in custody. Subject to the
provisions of section 269, the officer in charge of the prison shall,
upon delivery of an order made under sub- section
(1) of section 267 and duly countersigned, where necessary, under sub-
section (2) thereof, cause the person named in the order to be taken
to the Court in which his attendance is required, so as to be present
there at the time mentioned in the order, and shall cause him to be
kept in custody in or near the Court until he has been examined or
until the Court authorises him to be taken back to the prison in which
he was confined or detained.
CrPC Section 271. Power to issue commission for examination of witness in
prison. The provisions of this Chapter shall be without prejudice to the
power of the Court to issue, under section 284, a commission for the
examination, as a witness, of any person confined or detained in a
prison; and the provisions of Part B of Chapter XXIII shall apply in
relation to the examination on commission of any such person in the
prison as they apply in relation to the examination on commission of any
other person. CHAP EVIDENCE IN INQUIRIES AND TRIALS. CHAPTER XXIII
EVIDENCE IN INQUIRIES AND TRIALS A.- Mode of taking an recording
evidence
CrPC Section 272. Language of Courts. The State Government may determine what
shall be, for purposes of this Code, the language of each Court within
the State other than the High Court.
CrPC Section 273. Evidence to be taken in presence of accused. Except as
otherwise expressly provided, all evidence taken in the course of the
trial or other proceeding shall be taken in the presence of the accused,
or, when his personal attendance is dispensed with, in the presence of
his pleader.
Explanation.- In this section,” accused” includes a person in relation
to whom any proceeding under Chapter VIII has been commenced under this
Code.
CrPC Section 274. Record in summons- cases and inquiries.
(1) In all summons- cases tried before a Magistrate, in all inquiries
under sections 145 to 148 (both inclusive), and in all proceedings
under section 446 otherwise than in the course of a trial, the
Magistrate shall, as the examination of each witness proceeds, make a
memorandum of the substance of his evidence in the language of the
Court: Provided that if the Magistrate is unable to make such
memorandum himself, he shall, after recording the reason of his
inability, cause such memorandum to be made in writing or from his
dictation in open Court.
(2) Such memorandum shall be signed by the Magistrate and shall form
part of the record.
CrPC Section 275. Record in warrant- cases.
(1) In all warrant- cases tried before a Magistrate, the evidence of
each witness shall, as his examination proceeds, be taken down in
writing either by the Magistrate himself or by his dictation in open
Court or, where he is unable to do so owing to a physical or other
incapacity, under his direction and superintendence, by an officer of
the Court appointed by him in this behalf.
(2) Where the Magistrate causes the evidence to be taken down, he
shall record a certificate that, the evidence could not be taken down
by himself for the reasons referred to in sub- section (1).
(3) Such evidence shall ordinarily be taken down in the form of a
narrative; but the Magistrate may, in his discretion take down, or
cause to be taken down, any part of such evidence in the form of
question and answer.
(4) The evidence so taken down shall be signed by the Magistrate and
shall form part of the record.
CrPC Section 276. Record in trial before Court of Session.
(1) In all trials before a Court of Session, the evidence of each
witness shall, as his examination proceeds, be taken down in writing
either by the presiding Judge himself or by his dictation in open
Court or, under his direction and superintendence, by an officer of
the Court appointed by him in this behalf.
(2) 1 Such evidence shall ordinarily be taken down in the
form of a narrative, but the presiding Judge may, in his discretion,
take down, or cause to be taken down, any part of such evidence in the
form of question and answer.]
(3) The evidence so taken down shall be signed by the presiding Judge
and shall form part of the record.
CrPC Section 277. Language of record of evidence. In every case where
evidence is taken down under section 275 or section 276,-
(a) if the witness gives evidence in the language of the Court, it
shall be taken down in that language;
(b) if he gives evidence in any other language, it may, if
practicable, be taken down in that language, and if it is not
practicable to do so, a true translation of the evidence in the
language of the Court shall be prepared as the examination of the
witness proceeds, signed by the Magistrate or presiding Judge, and
shall form part of the record;
(c) where under clause (b) evidence is taken down in a language other
than the language of the Court, a true translation thereof in the
language of the Court shall be prepared as soon as practicable, signed
by the Magistrate or presiding Judge, and shall form part of the
record: Provided that when under clause (b) evidence is taken down in
English and a translation thereof in the language of the Court is not
required by any of the parties, the Court may dispense with such
translation.
CrPC Section 278. Procedure in regard to such evidence when completed.
(1) As the evidence of each witness taken under section 275 or section
276 is completed, it shall be read over to him in the presence of the
accused, if in attendance, or of his pleader, if he appears by
pleader, and shall, if necessary, be corrected.
(2) If the witness denies the correctness of any part of the evidence
when the same is read over to him, the Magistrate or presiding Judge
may, instead of correcting the evidence, make a memorandum thereon of
the objection made to it by the witness and shall add such remarks as
he thinks necessary.
1. Subs. by Act 45 of 1978, s. 20, for sub- section (2) (w. e. f.
18- 12- 1978 ).
(3) If the record of the evidence is in a language different from that
in which it has been given and the witness does not understand that
language, the record shall be interpreted to him in the language in
which it was given, or in a language which he understands.
CrPC Section 279. Interpretation of evidence to accused or his pleader.
(1) Whenever any evidence is given in a language not understood by the
accused, and he is present in Court in person, it shall be interpreted
to him in open Court in a language understood by him.
(2) If he appears by pleader and the evidence is given in a language
other than the language of the Court, and not understood by the
pleader, it shall be interpreted to such pleader in that language.
(3) When documents are put for the purpose of formal proof, it shall
be in the discretion of the Court to interpret as much thereof as
appears necessary.
CrPC Section 280. Remarks respecting demeanour of witness. When a presiding
Judge or Magistrate has recorded the evidence of a witness, he shall
also record such remarks (if any) as he thinks material respecting the
demeanour of such witness whilst under examination.
CrPC Section 281. Record of examination of accused.
(1) Whenever the accused is examined by a Metropolitan Magistrate, the
Magistrate shall make a memorandum of the substance of the examination
of the accused in the language of the Court and such memorandum shall
be signed by the Magistrate and shall form part of the record.
(2) Whenever the accused is examined by any Magistrate other than a
Metropolitan Magistrate, or by a Court of Session, the whole of such
examination, including every question put to him and every answer
given by him, shall be recorded in full by the presiding Judge or
Magistrate himself or where he is unable to do so owing to a physical
or other incapacity, under his direction and superintendence by an
officer of the Court appointed by him in this behalf.
(3) The record shall, if practicable, be in the language in which the
accused is examined or, if that is not practicable, in the language of
the Court.
(4) The record shall be shown or read to the accused, or, if he does
not understand the language in which it is written, shall be
interpreted
to him in a language which he understands, and he shall be at liberty
to explain or add to his answers.
(5) It shall thereafter be signed by the accused and by the Magistrate
or presiding Judge, who shall certify under his own hand that the
examination was taken in his presence and hearing and that the record
contains a full and true account of the statement made by the accused.
(6) Nothing in this section shall be deemed to apply to the
examination of an accused person in the course of a summary trial.
CrPC Section 282. Interpreter to be bound to interpret truthfully. When the
services of an interpreter are required by any Criminal Court for the
interpretation of any evidence or statement, he shall be bound to state
the true interpretation of such evidence or statement.
CrPC Section 283. Record in High Court. Every High Court may, by general
rule, prescribe the manner in which the evidence of witnesses and the
examination of the accused shall be taken down in cases coming before
it; and such evidence and examination shall be taken down in accordance
with such rule, B.- Commissions for the examination of witnesses
CrPC Section 284. When attendance of witness may be dispensed with and
commission issued.
(1) Whenever, in the course of any inquiry, trial or other proceeding
under this Code, it appears to a Court or Magistrate that the
examination of a witness is necessary for the ends of justice, and
that the attendance of such witness cannot be procured without an
amount of delay, expense or inconvenience which, under the
circumstances of the case, would be unreasonable, the Court or
Magistrate may dispense with such attendance and may issue a
commission for the examination of the witness in accordance with the
provisions of this Chapter: Provided that where the examination of the
President or the Vice- President of India or the Governor of a State
or the Administrator of a Union territory as a witness is necessary
for the ends of justice, a commission shall be issued for the
examination of such a witness.
(2) The Court may, when issuing a commission for the examination of a
witness for the prosecution, direct that such amount as the Court
considers reasonable to meet the expenses of the accused, including
the pleader’ s fees, be paid by the prosecution.
CrPC Section 285. Commission to whom to be issued.
(1) If the witness is within the territories to which this Code
extends, the commission shall be directed to the Chief Metropolitan
Magistrate or Chief Judicial Magistrate, as the case may be, within
whose local jurisdiction the witness is to be found.
(2) If the witness is in India, but in a State or an area to which
this Code does not extend, the commission shall be directed to such
Court or officer as the Central Government may, by notification,
specify in this behalf.
(3) If the witness is in a country or place outside India and
arrangements have been made by the Central Government with the
Government of such country or place for taking the evidence of
witnesses in relation to criminal matters, the commission shall be
issued in such form, directed to such Court or officer, and sent to
such authority for transmission, as the Central Government may, by
notification, prescribe in this behalf.
CrPC Section 286. Execution of commissions. Upon receipt of the commission,
the Chief Metropolitan Magistrate or Chief Judicial Magistrate, or such
Metropolitan or Judicial Magistrate as he may appoint in this behalf,
shall summon the witness before him or proceed to the place where the
witness is, and shall take down his evidence in the same manner, and may
for this purpose exercise the same powers, as in trials of warrant-
cases under this Code.
CrPC Section 287. Parties may examine witnesses.
(1) The parties to any proceeding under this Code in which a
commission is issued may respectively forward any interrogatories in
writing which the Court or Magistrate directing the commission may
think relevant to the issue, and it shall be lawful for the
Magistrate, Court or officer to whom the commission is directed, or to
whom the duty of executing it is delegated, to examine the witness
upon such interrogatories.
(2) Any such party may appear before such Magistrate, Court or officer
by pleader, or if not in custody, in person, and may examine, cross-
examine and re- examine (as the case may be) the said witness.
CrPC Section 288. Return of commission.
(1) After any commission issued under section 284 has been duly
executed, it shall be returned, together with the deposition of the
witness examined thereunder, to the Court or Magistrate issuing the
commission; and the commission, the return thereto and the deposition
shall be opened at all reasonable times to inspection of the parties,
and
may, subject to all just exceptions, be read in evidence in the case
by either party, and shall form part of the record.
(2) Any deposition so taken, if it satisfies the conditions prescribed
by section 33 of the Indian Evidence Act, 1872 (1 of 1872 ), may also
be received in evidence at any subsequent stage of the case before
another Court.
CrPC Section 289. Adjournment of proceeding. In every case in which a
commission is issued under section 284, the inquiry, trial or other
proceeding may be adjourned for a specified time reasonably sufficient
for the execution and return of the commission.
CrPC Section 290. Execution of foreign commissions.
(1) The provisions of section 286 and so much of section 287 and
section 288 as relate to the execution of a commission and its return
shall apply in respect of commissions issued by any of the Courts,
Judges or Magistrates hereinafter mentioned as they apply to
commissions issued under section 284.
(2) The Courts, Judges and Magistrates referred to in sub- section (1)
are-
(a) any such Court, Judge or Magistrate exercising jurisdiction
within an area in India to which this Code does not extend, as the
Central Government may, by notification, specify in this behalf;
(b) any Court, Judge or Magistrate exercising jurisdiction in any
such country or place outside India, as the Central Government may,
by notification, specify in this behalf, and having authority, under
the law in force in that country or place. to issue commissions for
the examination of witnesses in relation to criminal matters.
CrPC Section 291. Deposition of medical witness.
(1) The deposition of a civil surgeon or other medical witness, taken
and attested by a Magistrate in the presence of the accused, or taken
on commission under this Chapter, may be given in evidence in any
inquiry, trial or other proceeding under this Code, although the
deponent is not called as a witness.
(2) The Court may, if it thinks fit, and shall, on the application of
the prosecution or the accused, summon and examine any such deponent
as to the subject- matter of his deposition.
CrPC Section 292. Evidence of officers of the Mint.
(1) Any document purporting to be a report under the hand of any such
gazetted officer of the Mint or of the India Security Press (including
the office of the Controller of Stamps and Stationery) as the Central
Government may, by notification, specify in this behalf, upon any
matter or thing duly submitted to him for examination and report in
the course of any proceeding under this Code, may be used as evidence
in any inquiry, trial or other proceeding under this Code, although
such officer is not called as a witness.
(2) The Court may, if it thinks fit, summon and examine any such
officer as to the subject- matter of his report: Provided that no such
officer shall be summoned to produce any records on which the report
is based.
(3) Without prejudice to the provisions of sections 123 and 124 of the
Indian Evidence Act, 1872 (1 of 1872 ), no such officer shall, except
with the permission of the Master of the Mint or the India Security
Press or the Controller of Stamps and Stationery, as the case may be,
be permitted-
(a) to give any evidence derived from any unpublished official
records on which the report is based; or
(b) to disclose the nature or particulars of any test applied by him
in the course of the examination of the matter or thing.
CrPC Section 293. Reports of certain Government scientific experts.
(1) Any document purporting to be a report under the hand of a
Government scientific expert to whom this section applies, upon any
matter or thing duly submitted to him for examination or analysis and
report in the course of any proceeding under this Code, may be used as
evidence in any inquiry, trial or other proceeding under this Code.
(2) The Court may, if it thinks fit, summon and examine any such
expert as to the subject- matter of his report.
(3) Where any such expert is summoned by a Court and he is unable to
attend personally, he may, unless the Court has expressly directed him
to appear personally, depute any responsible officer working with him
to attend the Court, if such officer is conversant with the facts of
the case and can satisfactorily depose in Court on his behalf.
(4) This section applies to the following Government scientific
experts, namely:-
(a) any Chemical Examiner or Assistant Chemical Examiner to
Government;
(b) the Chief Inspector of- Explosives;
(c) the Director of the Finger Print Bureau;
(d) the Director, Haffkeine Institute, Bombay;
(e) the Director 1 , Deputy Director or Assistant
Director] of a Central Forensic Science Laboratory or a State
Forensic Science Laboratory;
(f) the Serologist to the Government.
CrPC Section 294. No formal proof of certain documents.
(1) Where any document is filed before any Court by the prosecution or
the accused, the particulars of every such document shall be included
in a list and the prosecution or the accused, as the case may be, or
the pleader for the prosecution or the accused, if any, shall be
called upon to admit or deny the genuineness of each such document.
(2) The list of documents shall be in such form as may be prescribed
by the State Government.
(3) Where the genuineness of any document is not disputed, such
document may be read in evidence in any inquiry, trial or other
proceeding under this Code without proof of the signature of the
person to whom it purports to be signed: Provided that the Court may,
in its discretion, require such signature to be proved.
CrPC Section 295. Affidavit in proof of conduct of public servants. When any
application is made to any Court in the course of any inquiry, trial or
other proceeding under this Code, and allegations are made therein
respecting any public servant, the applicant may give evidence of the
facts alleged in the application by affidavit, and the Court may, if it
thinks fit, order that evidence relating to such facts be so given.
CrPC Section 296. Evidence of formal character on affidavit.
(1) The evidence of any person whose evidence is of a formal character
may be given by affidavit and may, subject to all just exceptions, be
read in evidence in any inquiry, trial or other proceeding under this
Code.
(2) The Court may, if it thinks fit, and shall, on the application of
the prosecution or the accused, summon and examine any such person as
to the facts contained in his affidavit.
999999. 1 Ins. by Act 45 of 1978, s. 21 (w. e. f. 18- 12- 1980 ).
CrPC Section 297. Authorities before whom affidavits may be sworn.
(1) Affidavits to be used before any Court under this Code may be
sworn or affirmed before-
(a) 1 any Judge or any Judicial or Executive Magistrate,
or]
(b) any Commissioner of Oaths appointed by a High Court or Court of
Session, or
(c) any notary appointed under the Notaries Act, 1952 (53 of 1952 ).
(2) Affidavits shall be confined to, and shall state separately, such
facts as the deponent is able to prove from his own knowledge and such
facts as he has reasonable ground to believe to be true, and in the
latter case, the deponent shall clearly state the grounds of such
belief.
(3) The Court may order any scandalous and irrelevant matter in the
affidavit to be struck out or amended.
CrPC Section 298. Previous conviction or acquittal how proved. In any
inquiry, trial or other proceeding under this Code, a previous
conviction or acquittal may be proved, in addition to any other mode
provided by any law for the time being in force,-
(a) by an extract certified under the hand of the Officer having the
custody of the records of the Court in which such conviction or
acquittal was held, to be a copy of the sentence or order, or
(b) in case of a conviction, either by a certificate signed by the
officer in charge of the jail in which the punishment or any part
thereof was undergone, or by production of the warrant of commitment
under which the punishment was suffered, together with, in each of
such cases, evidence as to the identity of the accused person with the
person so convicted or acquitted.
CrPC Section 299. Record of evidence in absence of accused.
(1) If it is proved that an accused person has absconded, and that
there is no immediate prospect of arresting him, the Court competent
to try 2 , or commit for trial] such person for the offence
complained of may, in his absence, examine the witnesses (if any)
produced on behalf of the prosecution, and record their depositions
and any such deposition may, on the arrest of such person, be given in
evidence against him on the inquiry into, or trial for, the offence
with which he is charged, if the deponent is dead or incapable of
giving evidence or cannot be found or
his presence cannot be procured without an amount of- delay, expense
or inconvenience which, under the circumstances of the case, would be
unreasonable.
999999. 1 Subs. by Act 45 of 1978, s. 22, for cl. (a) (w. e. f.
18- 12- 1978 ), 2 Ins. by s. 23, ibid. (w. e. f. 18- 12- 1978 ).
(2) If it appears that an offence punishable with death or
imprisonment for life has been committed by some person or persons
unknown, the High Court or the Sessions Judge may direct that any
Magistrate of the first class shall hold an inquiry and examine any
witnesses who can give evidence concerning the offence and any
depositions so taken may be given in evidence against any person who
is subsequently accused of the offence, if the deponent is dead or
incapable of giving evidence or beyond the limits of India. CHAP
GENERAL PROVISIONS AS TO INQUIRIES AND TRIALS CHAPTER XXIV GENERAL
PROVISIONS AS TO INQUIRIES AND TRIALS
CrPC Section 300. Person once convicted or acquitted not to be tried for same
offence.
(1) A person who has once been tried by a Court of competent
jurisdiction for an offence and convicted or acquitted of such offence
shall, while such conviction or acquittal remains in force, not be
liable to be tried again for the same offence, nor on the same facts
for any other offence for which a different charge from the one made
against him might have been made under sub- section (1) of section
221, or for which he might have been convicted under sub- section (2)
thereof.
(2) A person acquitted or convicted of any offence may be afterwards
tried, with the consent of the State Government, for any distinct
offence for which a separate charge might have been made against him
at the former trial under sub- section (1) of section 220.
(3) A person convicted of any offence constituted by any act causing
consequences which, together with such act, constituted a different
offence from that of which he was convicted, may be afterwards tried
for such last- mentioned offence, if the consequences had not
happened, or were not known to the Court to have happened, at the time
when he was convicted.
(4) A person acquitted or convicted of any offence constituted by any
acts may, notwithstanding such acquittal or conviction, be
subsequently charged with, and tried for, any other offence
constituted by the same acts which he may have committed if the Court
by which he was first
tried was not competent to try the offence with which he is
subsequently charged.
(5) A person discharged under section 258 shall not be tried again for
the same offence except with the consent of the Court by which he was
discharged or of any other Court to which the first- mentioned Court
is subordinate.
(6) Nothing in this section shall affect the provisions of section 26
of the General Clauses Act, 1897 , (10 of 1897 ) or of section 188 of
this Code. Explanation.- The dismissal of a complaint, or the
discharge of the accused, is not an acquittal for the purposes of this
section. Illustrations
(a) A is tried upon a charge of theft as a servant and acquitted. He
cannot afterwards, while the acquittal remains in force, be charged
with theft as a servant, or, upon the same facts, with theft simply,
or with criminal breach of trust.
(b) A is tried for causing grievous hurt and convicted. The person
injured afterwards dies. A may be tried again for culpable homicide.
(c) A is charged before the Court of Session and convicted of the
culpable homicide of B. A may not afterwards be tried on the same
facts for the murder of B.
(d) A is charged by a Magistrate of the first class with, and
convicted by him of, voluntarily causing hurt to B. A may not
afterwards be tried for voluntarily causing grievous hurt to B on
the same facts, unless the cage comes within sub- section (3) of
this section.
(e) A is charged by a Magistrate of the second class with, and
convicted by him of, theft of property from the person of B. A may
subsequently be charged with, and tried for, robbery on the same
facts.
(f) A, B and C are charged by a Magistrate of the first class with,
and convicted by him of, robbing D. A, B and C may afterwards be
charged with, and tried for, dacoity on the same facts.
CrPC Section 301. Appearance by Public Prosecutors.
(1) The Public Prosecutor or Assistant Public Prosecutor in charge of
a case may appear and plead without any written authority before any
Court in which that case is under inquiry, trial or appeal.
(2) If in any such case, any private person instructs a pleader to
prosecute any person in any Court, the Public Prosecutor or Assistant
Public Prosecutor in charge of the case shall conduct the prosecution,
and the pleader so instructed shall act therein under the directions
of the Public Prosecutor or Assistant Public Prosecutor, and may, with
the permission of the Court, submit written arguments after the
evidence is closed in the case.
CrPC Section 302. Permission to conduct prosecution.
(1) Any Magistrate inquiring into or trying a case may permit the
prosecution to be conducted by any person other than a police officer
below the rank of Inspector; but no person, other than the Advocate
General or Government Advocate or a Public Prosecutor or Assistant
Public Prosecutor, shall be entitled to do so without such permission:
Provided that no police officer shall be permitted to conduct the
prosecution if he has taken part in the investigation into the offence
with respect to which the accused is being prosecuted.
(2) Any person conducting the prosecution may do so personally or by a
pleader.
CrPC Section 303. Right of person against whom proceedings are instituted to
be defended. Any person accused of an offence before a Criminal Court,
or against whom proceedings are instituted under this Code, may of right
be defended by a pleader of his choice.
CrPC Section 304. Legal aid to accused at State expense in certain cases.
(1) Where, in a trial before the Court of Session, the accused is not
represented by a pleader, and where it appears to the Court that the
accused has not sufficient means to engage a pleader, the Court shall
assign a pleader for his defence at the expense of the State.
(2) The High Court may, with the previous approval of the State
Government, make rules providing for-
(a) the mode of selecting pleaders for defence under sub- section
(1);
(b) the facilities to be allowed to such pleaders by the Courts;
(c) the fees payable to such pleaders by the Government, and
generally, for carrying out the purposes of sub- section (1).
(3) The State Government may, by notification, direct that, as from
such date as may be specified in the notification, the provisions of
sub- sections (1) and (2) shall apply in relation to any class of
trials before other Courts in the State as they apply in relation to
trials before Courts of Session.
CrPC Section 305. Procedure when corporation or registered society is an
accused. Right of person against whom proceedings are instituted to be
defended.
(1) In this section,” corporation” means an incorporated company or
other body corporate, and includes a society registered under the
Societies Registration Act, 1860 (21 of 1860 ).
(2) Where a corporation is the accused person or one of the accused
persons in an inquiry or trial, it may appoint a representative for
the purpose of the inquiry or trial and such appointment need not be
under the seal of the corporation.
(3) Where a representative of a corporation appears, any requirement
of this Code that anything shall be done in the presence of the
accused or shall be read or stated or explained to the accused, shall
be construed as a requirement that that thing shall be done in the
presence of the representative or read or stated or explained to the
representative, and any requirement that the accused shall be examined
shall be construed as a requirement that the representative shall be
examined.
(4) Where a representative of a corporation does not appear, any such
requirement as is referred to in sub- section (3) shall not apply.
(5) Where a statement in writing purporting to be signed by the
managing director of the corporation or by any person (by whatever
name called) having, or being one of the persons having the management
of the affairs of the corporation to the effect that the person named
in the statement has been appointed as the representative of the
corporation for the purposes of this section, is filed, the Court
shall, unless the contrary is proved, presume that such person has
been so appointed.
(6) If a question arises as to whether any person, appearing as the
representative of a corporation in an inquiry or trial before a Court
is or is not such representative, the question shall be determined by
the Court.
CrPC Section 306. Tender of pardon to accomplice.
(1) With a view to obtaining the evidence of any person supposed to
have been directly or indirectly concerned in or privy to an offence
to which this section applies, the Chief Judicial Magistrate or a
Metropolitan Magistrate at any stage of the investigation or inquiry
into, or the trial of, the offence, and the Magistrate of the first
class inquiring into or trying the offence, at any stage of the
inquiry or trial, may tender a pardon to such person on condition of
his making a full and true dis- closure of the whole of the
circumstances within his knowledge relative to the offence and to
every other person concerned, whether as principal or abettor, in the
commission thereof.
(2) This section applies to-
(a) any offence triable exclusively by the Court of Session or by
the Court of a Special Judge appointed under the Criminal Law
Amendment Act, 1952 (46 of 1952 );
(b) any offence punishable with imprisonment which may extend to
seven years or with a more severe sentence.
(3) Every Magistrate who tenders a pardon under sub- section (1) shall
record-
(a) his reasons for so doing;
(b) whether the tender was or was not accepted by the person to whom
it was made, and shall, on application made by the accused, furnish
him with a copy of such record free of cost.
(4) Every person accepting a tender of pardon made under sub- section
(1)-
(a) shall be examined as a witness in the Court of the Magistrate
taking cognizance of the offence and in the subsequent trial, if
any;
(b) shall, unless he is already on bail, be detained in custody
until the termination of the trial.
(5) Where a person has, accepted a tender of pardon made under sub-
section (1) and has been examined under sub- section (4), the
Magistrate taking cognizance of the offence shall, without making any
further inquiry in the case,-
(a) commit it for trial-
(i) to the Court of Session if the, offence is triable exclusively
by that Court or if the Magistrate taking cognizance is the Chief
Judicial Magistrate;
(ii) to a Court of Special Judge appointed under the Criminal Law
Amendment Act, 1952 (46 of 1952 ), if the offence is triable
exclusively by that Court;
(b) in any other case, make over the case to the Chief Judicial
Magistrate who shall try the case himself.
CrPC Section 307. Power to direct tender of pardon. At any time after
commitment of a case but before judgment is passed, the Court to which
the commitment is made may, with a view
to obtaining at the trial the evidence of any person supposed to have
been directly or indirectly concerned in, or privy to, any such offence,
tender a pardon on the same condition to such person.
CrPC Section 308. Trial of person not complying with conditions of pardon.
(1) Where, in regard to a person who has accepted a tender of pardon
made under section 306 or section 307, the Public Prosecutor certifies
that in his opinion such person has, either by wilfully concealing
anything essential or by giving false evidence, not complied with the
condition on which the tender was made, such person may be tried for
the offence in respect of which the pardon was so tendered or for any
other offence of which he appears to have been guilty in connection
with the same matter, and also for the offence of giving false
evidence: Provided that such person shall not be tried jointly with
any of the other accused: Provided further that such person shall not
be tried for the offence of giving false evidence except with the
sanction of the High Court, and nothing contained in section 195 or
section 340 shall apply to that offence.
(2) Any statement made by such person accepting the tender of pardon
and recorded by a Magistrate under section 164 or by a Court under
sub- section (4) of section 306 may be given in evidence against him
at such trial.
(3) At such trial, the accused shall be entitled to plead that he has
complied with the condition upon which such tender was made; in which
case it shall be for the prosecution to prove that the condition has
no been complied with.
(4) At such trial, the Court shall-
(a) if it is a Court of Session, before the charge is read out an
explained to the accused;
(b) if it is the Court of a Magistrate, before the evidence of the
witnesses for the prosecution is taken, ask the accused whether he
pleads that he has complied with the conditions on which the tender
of pardon was made.
(5) If the accused does so plead, the Court shall record the plea an
proceed with the trial and it shall, before passing judgment in the
case, find whether or not the accused has complied with the conditions
of the pardon, and, if it finds that he has so complied, it shall,
notwithstanding anything contained in this Code, pass judgment of
acquittal.
CrPC Section 309. Power to postpone or adjourn proceedings.
(1) In every inquiry or trial, the proceedings shall be held as
expeditiously as possible, and in particular, when the examination of
witnesses has once begun, the same shall be continued from day to day
until all the witnesses in attendance have been examined, unless the
Court finds the adjournment of the same beyond the following day to be
necessary for reasons to be recorded.
(2) If the Court, after taking cognizance of an offence, or
commencement of trial, finds it necessary or advisable to postpone the
commencement of, or adjourn, any inquiry or trial, it may, from time
to time, for reasons to be recorded, postpone or adjourn the same on
such terms as it thinks fit, for such time as it considers reasonable,
and may by a warrant remand the accused if in custody: Provided that
no Magistrate shall remand an accused person to custody under this
section for a term exceeding fifteen days at a time: Provided further
that when witnesses are in attendance, no adjournment or postponement
shall be granted, without examining them, except for special reasons
to be recorded in writing: 1
Provided also that no adjournment shall be granted for the purpose
only of enabling the accused person to show cause against the sentence
proposed to be imposed on him.] Explanation 1.- If sufficient evidence
has been obtained to raise a suspicion that the accused may have
committed an offence, and it appears likely that further evidence may
be obtained by a remand, this is a reasonable cause for a remand.
Explanation 2.- The terms on which an adjournment or postponement may
be granted include, in appropriate cases, the payment of costs by the
prosecution or the accused.
CrPC Section 310. Local inspection.
(1) Any Judge or Magistrate may, at any stage of any inquiry, trial or
other proceeding, after due notice to the parties, visit and inspect
any place in which an offence is alleged to have been committed, or
any other place which it is in his opinion necessary to view for the
purpose of properly appreciating the evidence given at such inquiry or
trial, and shall without unnecessary delay record a memorandum of any
relevant facts observed at such inspection.
(2) Such memorandum shall form part of the record of the case and if
the prosecutor, complainant or accused or any other party to the case,
so desires, a copy of the memorandum shall be furnished to him free of
cost.
1. Ins. by Act 45 of 1978, s. 24 (w. e. f. 18- 12- 1978 ).
CrPC Section 311. Power to summon material witness, or examine person
present. Any Court may, at any stage of any inquiry, trial or other
proceeding under this Code, summon any person as a witness, or examine
any person in attendance, though not summoned as a witness, or. recall
and re- examine any person already examined; and the Court shall summon
and examine or recall and re- examine any such person if his evidence
appears to it to be essential to the just decision of the case.
CrPC Section 312. Expenses of complaints and witnesses. Subject to any rules
made by the State Government, any Criminal Court may, if it thinks fit,
order payment, on the part of Government, of the reasonable expenses of
any complainant or witness attending for the purposes of any inquiry,
trial or other proceeding before such Court under this Code.
CrPC Section 313. Power to examine the accused.
(1) In every inquiry or trial, for the purpose of enabling the accused
personally to explain any circumstances appearing in the evidence
against him, the Court-
(a) may at any stage, without previously warning the accused, put
such questions to him as the Court considers necessary;
(b) shall, after the witnesses for the prosecution have been
examined and before he is called on for his defence, question him
generally on the case: Provided that in a summons- case, where the
Court has dispensed with the personal attendance of the accused, it
may also dispense with his examination under clause (b).
(2) No oath shall be administered to the accused when he is examined
under sub- section (1).
(3) The accused shall not render himself liable to punishment by
refusing to answer such questions, or by giving false answers to them.
(4) The answers given by the accused may be taken into consideration
in such inquiry or trial, and put in evidence for or against him in
any other inquiry into, or trial for, any other offence which such
answers may tend to show he has committed.
CrPC Section 314. Oral arguments and memorandum of arguments.
(1) Any party to a proceeding may, as soon as may be, after the close
of his evidence, address concise oral arguments, and may, before he
concludes the oral arguments, if any, submit a memorandum to the Court
setting forth concisely and under distinct headings, the arguments in
support of his case and every such memorandum shall form part of the
record.
(2) A copy of every such memorandum shall be simultaneously fur-
nished to the opposite party.
(3) No adjournment of the proceedings shall be granted for the purpose
of filing the written arguments unless the Court, for reasons to be
recorded in writing, considers it necessary to grant such adjournment.
(4) The Court may, if it is of opinion that the oral arguments are not
concise or relevant, regulate such arguments.
CrPC Section 315. Accused person to be competent witness.
(1) Any person accused of an offence before a Criminal Court shall be
a competent witness for the defence and may give evidence on oath in
disproof of the charges made against him or any person charged
together with him at the same trial: Provided that-
(a) he shall not be called as a witness except on his own request in
writing;
(b) his failure to give evidence shall not be made the subject of
any comment by any of the parties or the Court or give rise to any
presumption against himself or any person charged together with him
at the same trial.
(2) Any person against whom proceedings are instituted in any Criminal
Court under section 98, or section 107, or section 108, or section
109, or section 110, or under Chapter IX or under Part B, Part C or
Part D of Chapter X, may offer himself as a witness in such
proceedings: Provided that in proceedings under section 108, section
109 or section 110, the failure of such person to give evidence shall
not be made the subject or any comment by any of the parties or the
Court or give rise to any presumption against him or any other person
proceeded against together with him at the same inquiry.
CrPC Section 316. No influence to be used to induce disclosure. Except as
provided in sections 306 and 307, no influence, by means of any promise
or threat or otherwise, shall be used to an accused
person to induce him to disclose or withhold any matter within his
knowledge.
CrPC Section 317. Provision for inquiries and trial being held in the absence
of accused in certain cases.
(1) At any stage of an inquiry or trial under this Code, if the Judge
or Magistrate is satisfied, for reasons to be recorded, that the
personal attendance of the accused before the Court is not necessary
in the interests of justice, or that the accused persistently disturbs
the proceedings in Court, the Judge or Magistrate may, if the accused
is represented by a pleader, dispense with his attendance and proceed
with such inquiry or trial in his absence, and may, at any subsequent
stage of the proceedings, direct the personal attendance of such
accused.
(2) If the accused in any such case is not represented by a pleader,
or if the Judge or Magistrate considers his personal attendance
necessary, he may, if he thinks fit and for reasons to be recorded by
him, either adjourn such inquiry or trial, or order that the case of
such accused be taken up or tried separately.
CrPC Section 318. Procedure where accused does not understand proceedings. If
the accused, though not of unsound mind, cannot be made to understand
the proceedings, the Court may proceed with the inquiry or trial; and,
in the case of a Court other than a High Court, if such proceed- ings
result in a conviction, the proceedings shall be forwarded to the High
Court with a report of the circumstances of the case, and the High Court
shall pass thereon such order as it thinks fit.
CrPC Section 319. Power to proceed against other persons appearing to be
guilty of offence.
(1) Where, in the course of any inquiry into, or trial of, an offence,
it appears from the evidence that any person not being the accused has
committed any offence for which such person could be tried together
with the accused, the Court may proceed against such person for the
offence which he appears to have committed.
(2) Where such person is not attending the Court, he may be arrested
or summoned, as the circumstances of the case may require, for the
purpose aforesaid.
(3) Any person attending the Court, although not under arrest or upon
a summons, may be detained by such Court for the purpose of the
inquiry into, or trial of, the offence which he appears to have
committed.
(4) Where the Court proceeds against any person under sub- section
(1), then-
(a) the proceedings in respect of such person shall be commenced a
fresh, and the witnesses re- heard;
(b) subject to the provisions of clause (a), the case may proceed as
if such person had been an accused person when the Court took
cognizance of the offence upon which the inquiry or trial was
commenced.
CrPC Section 320. Compounding of offences.
(1) The offences punishable under the sections of the Indian Penal
Code specified in the first two columns of the Table next following
may be compounded by the persons mentioned in the third column of that
Table:- TABLE Section of the Indian Offence Penal Code Person by whom
offence applicable may be compounded 1 2 3 Uttering words, etc., with
298 The person whose reli- deliberate intent to wound gious feelings
are in- the religious feelings of tended to be compoun- any person.
ded. Causing hurt————- 323, 334 The person to whom the hurt is
caused. Wrongfully restraining or 341, 342 The person restrained or
confining any person. confined. Assault or use of criminal 352, 355,
358 The person assaulted or force. to whom criminal force is used.
Mischief, when the only loss 426, 427 The person to whom the or damage
caused is loss or loss or damage is caused. damage to a private
person. Criminal trespass————- 447 The person in possession of
the property tre- spassed upon. House- trespass———– 448 Ditto.
Criminal breach of contract 491 The person with whom the of service.
offender has contracted. Adultery—————- 497 The husband of
the woman. Enticing or taking away or 498 Ditto. detaining with
criminal in- tent a married woman. 1 Defamation, except
such 500 The person defamed. cases as are specified against section
500 of the Indian Penal Code in column 1 of the Table under sub-
section (2).] Printing or engraving matter, 501 Ditto. knowing it to
be defamatory. Sale of printed or engraved 502 Ditto. substance
containing defa- matory matter, knowing it to contain such matter.
Section of the Indian Offence Penal Code Person by whom offence
applicable may be compounded 1 2 3 Insult intended to provoke 504 The
person insulted. a breach of the peace. Criminal intimidation except
506 The person intimidated. when the offence is punish- able with
imprisonment for seven years. Act caused by making a person 508 The
person against whom believe that he will be an the offence was commi-
object of divine displeasure. tted.
999999. 1 Subs. by Act 45 of 1978, s. 25, for” defamation” (w. e.
f. 18- 12- 1978 ).
(2) The offences punishable under the sections of the Indian Penal (45
of 1860 ) Code specified in the first two columns of the Table next
following may, with the permission of the Court before which any
prosecution for such offence is pending, be compounded by the persons
mentioned in the third column of that Table: TABLE Section of the
Indian Offence Penal Code Person by whom offence applicable may be
compounded 1 2 3 Voluntarily causing hurt by 324 The person to whom
hurt dangerous weapons or means. is caused. Voluntarily causing
grievous 325 Ditto. hurt. Voluntarily causing grievous 335 Ditto. hurt
on grave and sudden provocation. Causing hurt by doing an act 337
Ditto, so rashly and negligently as to endanger human life or the
personal safety of others. Causing grievous hurt by 338 Ditto. doing
an act so rashly and negligently as to endanger human life or the
personal safety of others. Wrongfully confining a person 343 The
person confined. for three days or more.
Section of the Indian Offence Penal Code Person by whom offence
applicable may be compounded 1 2 3 Wrongfully confining for ten 344
The person confined. or more days. Wrongfully confining a person 346
Ditto. in secret. Assault or criminal force to 354 The woman assulted
to woman with intent to outrage whom the criminal force her modesty.
was used. Assault or criminal force in 357 The person assaulted or
attempting wrongfully to con- to whom the force was fine a person.
used. Theft, where the value of 379 The owner of the pro- property
stolen does not perty stolen. exceed two hundred and fifty rupees.
Theft, by clerk or servant 381 Ditto. of property in possession of
master, where the value of the property stolen does not exceed two
hundred and fifty rupees. Dishonest misappropriation 403 The owner of
the property of property misappropriated. Criminal breach of trust,
406 The owner of the property where the value of the pro- in respect
of which the perty does not exceed two breach of trust has been
hundred and a fifty rupees. committed. Criminal breach of trust, 407
Ditto. by a carrier, wharfinger, etc., where the value of the property
does not exc- eed two hundred and afifty rupees. Criminal breach of
trust by 408 Ditto. a clerk or servant, where the value of the
property does not exceed two hundred and fifty rupees. Dishonestly,
receiving 411 The owner of the property stolen property, knowing
stolen. it to be stolen, when the value of the stolen pro- perty does
not exceed two hundred and fifty rupees. Assuming in the concealment
414 Ditto. or disposal of stolen pro- perty, knowing it to be stolen,
where the value of the stolen property does not exceed two hundred and
fifty rupees. Cheating.——— 417 The person cheated. Cheating a
person whose in- 418 Ditto. terest the offender was bound, either by
law or by legal contract, to protect.
Section of the Indian Offence Penal Code Person by whom offence
applicable may be compounded 1 2 3 Cheating by personation 419 The
person cheated. Cheating and dishonestly in- 420 Ditto. ducing
delivery of property or the making alternation or distruction of a
valuable security. Fraudulent removal over 421 The creditors who are
concealment of property, affected thereby. etc., to prevent
distribution among creditors. Fraudulently preventing from 422 Ditto.
being made available for his creditors a debt or demand due to the
offender. Fraudulent execution of deed 423 The person affacted of
transfer containing false thereby. statement of consideration.
Fraudulent removal or con- 424 Ditto. cealment of property. Mischief
by killing or mai- 428 The owner of the animal. ming animal of the
value of ten rupees or upwards. Mischief by killing or mai- 429 The
owner of the cattle ming cattle, etc., of any or animal. value or any
other animal of the value of fifty rupees or upwards. Mischief by
injury to work of 430 The person to whom the irrigation by wrongfuly
diver- the loss or damage is ting water when the only loss caused. or
damage caused is loss or damage to a private person. House- trespass
to commit an 451 The person in possession offence (other than theft)
of the house trespassed punishable with imprisonment. upon. Using a
false trade or pro- 482 The person to whom loss perty mark or injury
is caused by such use. Counterfeiting a trade or 483 The person whose
trade or property mark used by anot- property mark is counter- her.
feited. Knowingly selling, or expo- 486 Ditto. sing or possessing for
sale or for manufacturing purpose, goods marked with a counter- feit
property mark. Marrying again during the 494 The husband or wife of
lifetime of a husband or wife. the person so marrying.
Section of the Indian Offence Penal Code Person by whom offence
applicable may be compounded 1 2 3 Defamation against the Presi- 500
The person defamed. dent or the Vice- President or the Governor of a
State or the Administrator of a Union territory or a Minister in
respect of his conduct in the discharge of his public functions when
instituted upon a complaint made by the Public Prosecutor. Uttering
words or sounds or 509 The woman whom it was making gestures or
exhibiting intended to insult or any object intending to insult whose
privacy was intru- the modesty of a woman or in- ded upon. truding
upon the privacy of a woman.
(3) When any offence is compoundable under this section, the abetment
of such offence or an attempt to commit such offence (when such
attempt is itself an offence) may be compounded in like manner.
(4) (a) When the person who would otherwise be competent to com- pound
an offence under this section is under the age of eighteen years or is
an idiot or a lunatic, any person competent to contract on his behalf
may, with the permission of the Court, compound such offence.
(b) When the person who would otherwise be competent to compound an
offence under this section is dead, the legal representative, as
defined in the Code of Civil Procedure, 1908 (5 of 1908 ), of such
person may, with the consent of the Court, compound such offence.
(5) When the accused has been committed for trial or when he has been
convicted and an appeal is pending, no composition for the offence
shall be allowed without the leave of the Court to which he is
committed, or, as the case may be, before which the appeal is to be
heard.
(6) A High Court or Court of Session acting in the exercise of its
powers of revision under section 401 may allow any person to compound
any offence which such person is competent to compound under this
section.
(7) No offence shall be compounded if the accused is, by reason of a
previous conviction, liable either to enhanced punishment or to a
punishment of a different kind for such offence.
(8) The composition of an offence under this section shall have the
effect of an acquittal of the accused with whom the offence has been
compounded.
(9) No offence shall be compounded except as provided by this section.
CrPC Section 321. Withdrawal from prosecution. The Public Prosecutor or
Assistant Public Prosecutor in charge of a case may, with the consent of
the Court, at any time before the judgment is pronounced, withdraw from
the prosecution of any person either generally or in respect of any one
or more of the offences for which he is tried; and, upon such
withdrawal,-
(a) if it is made before a charge has been framed, the accused shall
be discharged in respect of such offence or offences;
(b) if it is made after a charge has been framed, or when under this
Code no charge is required, he shall be acquitted in respect of such
offence or offences: Provided that where such offence-
(i) was against any law relating to a matter to which the executive
power of the Union extends, or
(ii) was investigated by the Delhi Special Police Establishment
under the Delhi Special Police Establishment Act, 1946 (25 of 1946
), or
(iii) involved the misappropriation or destruction of, or damage to,
any property belonging to the Central Government, or
(iv) was committed by a person in the service of the Central
Government while acting or purporting to act in the discharge of his
official duty, and the Prosecutor in charge of the case hag hot been
appointed by the Central Government, he shall not, unless he hag
been permitted by the Central Government to do so, move the Court
for its consent to withdraw from the prosecution and the Court
shall, before according consent, direct the Prosecutor to produce
before it the permission granted by the Central Government to
withdraw from the prosecution.
CrPC Section 322. Procedure in cases which Magistrate cannot dispose of.
(1) If, in the course of any inquiry into an offence or a trial before
a Magistrate in any district, the evidence appears to him to Warrant a
presumption-
(a) that he has no jurisdiction to try the case or commit it for
trial, or
(b) that the case is one which should be tried or committed for
trial by some other Magistrate in the district, or
(c) that the case should be tried by the Chief Judicial Magistrate,
he shall stay the proceedings and submit the case, with a brief
report explaining its nature, to the Chief Judicial Magistrate or to
such other Magistrate, having jurisdiction, as the Chief Judicial
Magistrate directs.
(2) The Magistrate to whom the case is submitted may, if so em-
powered, either try the case himself, or refer it to any Magistrate
subordinate to him having jurisdiction, or commit the accused for
trial.
CrPC Section 323. Procedure when, after Commencement of inquiry or trial,
Magistrate finds case should be committed. If, in any inquiry into an
offence or a trial before a Magistrate, it appears to him at any stage
of the proceedings before signing judgment that the case is one which
ought to be tried by the Court of Session, he shall commit it to that
Court under the provisions hereinbefore contained 1
and thereupon the provisions of Chapter XVIII shall apply to the
commitment so made].
Trial of persons previously convicted of offences against coinage,
stamp- law or property.
CrPC Section 324. Trial of persons previously convicted of offences against
coinage, stamp- law or property.
(1) Where a person, having been convicted of an offence punishable
under Chapter XII or Chapter XVII of the Indian Penal Code (45 of 1860
) with imprisonment for a term of three years or upwards, is again
accused of any offence punishable under either of those Chapters with
imprisonment for a term of three years or upwards, and the Magistrate
before whom the case is pending is satisfied that there is ground for
presuming that such person has committed the offence, he shall be sent
for trial to the Chief Judicial Magistrate or committed to the Court
of Session, unless the Magistrate is competent to try the case and is
of opinion that he can himself pass an adequate sentence if the
accused is convicted.
(2) When any person is sent for trial to the Chief Judicial Magistrate
or committed to the Court of Session under sub- section (1) any other
person accused jointly with him in the same inquiry or trial shall be
similarly sent or committed, unless the Magistrate discharges such
other person under section 239 or section 245, as the case may be.
CrPC Section 325. Procedure when Magistrate cannot pass sentence sufficiently
severe.
(1) Whenever a Magistrate is of opinion, after hearing the evidence
for the prosecution and the accused, that the accused is guilty, and
that he ought to receive a punishment different in kind from, or more
severe than, that which such Magistrate is empowered to inflict, or,
being a Magistrate of the second class, is of opinion that the accused
ought to be required to execute a bond under section 106, he may
record the opinion
and submit his proceedings, and forward the accused, to the Chief
Judicial Magistrate to whom he is subordinate.
1. Ins. by Act 45 of 1978, s. 26 (w. e. f. 18- 12- 1978 ).
(2) When more accused than one are being tried together, and the
Magistrate considers it necessary to proceed under sub- section (1),
in regard to any of such accused, he shall forward all the accused,
who are in his opinion guilty, to the Chief Judicial Magistrate.
(3) The Chief Judicial Magistrate to whom the proceedings are
submitted may, if he thinks fit, examine the parties and recall and
examine any witness who has already given evidence in the case and may
call for and take any further evidence and shall pass such judgment,
sentence or order in the case as he thinks fit, and as is according to
law.
CrPC Section 326. Conviction or commitment on evidence partly recorded by one
Magistrate and partly by another.
(1) Whenever any 1 Judge or Magistrate], after having heard
and recorded the whole or any part of the evidence in an inquiry or a
trial, ceases to exercise jurisdiction therein and is succeeded by
another 1 Judge or Magistrate] who has and who exercises
such jurisdiction, the 1 Judge or Magistrate] so succeeding
may act on the evidence so recorded by his predecessor, or partly
recorded by his predecessor and partly recorded by himself: Provided
that if the succeeding 1 Judge or Magistrate] is of opinion
that further examination of any of the witnesses whose evidence has
already been recorded is necessary in the interests of justice, he may
re- summon any such witness, and after such further examination,
cross- examination and re- examination, if any, as he may permit, the
witness shall be discharged.
(2) When a case is transferred under the provisions of this Code
2
[ from one Judge to another Judge or from one Magistrate to another
Magistrate], the former shall be deemed to cease to exercise
jurisdiction therein, and to be succeeded by the latter, within the
meaning of sub- section (1).
(3) Nothing in this section applies to summary trials or to cases in
which proceedings have been stayed under section 322 or in which
proceedings have been submitted to a superior Magistrate under section
325.
CrPC Section 327. Court to be open. 3
(1) ] The place in which any Criminal Court is held for the purpose of
inquiring into or trying any offence shall be deemed to be an open
Court, to which the public generally may have access, so far as the
same can conveniently contain them: Provided that the presiding Judge
or Magistrate may, if he thinks fit, order at any stage of any inquiry
into, or trial of, any particular case, that the public generally, or
any particular person, shall not have access to, or be or remain in,
the room or building used by the Court.
1. Subs. by Act 45 of 1978, s. 27, for Magistrate (w. e. f. 18-
12- 1978 ).
2. Subs. by s. 27 ibid. fpr Certain words (w. e. f. 18. 12. 1978
).
3. Renumbered by Act,— of 1983, s. 4.
(2) 1 Notwithstanding anything contained in sub- section
(1), he inquiry into and trial of rape or an offence under section
376, section 376A, section 376B, section 376C or section 376D of the
Indian Penal Code shall be conducted in camera: Provided that the
presiding judge may, if he thinks fit, or on an application made by
either of the parties, allow any particular person to have access to,
or be or remain in, the room or building used by the court.
(3) Where any proceedings are held under sub- section (2), it shall
not be lawful for any person to print or publish any matter in
relation to any such proceedings, except with’ the previous permission
of the court.] CHAP PROVISIONS AS TO ACCUSED PERSONS OF UNSOUND MIND.
CHAPTER XXV PROVISIONS AS TO ACCUSED PERSONS OF UNSOUND MIND.
CrPC Section 328. Procedure in case of accused being lunatic.
(1) When a Magistrate holding an inquiry has reason to believe that
the person against whom the inquiry is being held is of unsound mind
and consequently incapable of making his defence, the Magistrate shall
inquire into the fact of such unsoundness of mind, and shall cause
such person to be examined by the civil surgeon of the district or
such other medical officer as the State Government may direct, and
thereupon shall examine such surgeon or other officer as a witness,
and shall reduce the examination to writing.
(2) Pending such examination and inquiry, the Magistrate may deal with
such person in accordance with the provisions of section 330.
(3) If such Magistrate is of opinion that the person referred to in
sub- section (1) is of unsound mind and consequently incapable of
making his defence, he shall record a finding to that effect and shall
postpone further proceedings in the case.
CrPC Section 329. Procedure in case of person of unsound mind tried before
Court.
(1) If at the trial of any person before a Magistrate or Court of
Session, it appears to the Magistrate or Court that such person is of
unsound mind and consequently incapable of making his defence, the
Magistrate or Court shall, in the first instance, try the fact of such
unsoundness and incapacity, and if the Magistrate or Court, after
considering such medical and other evidence as may be produced before
him or it, is satisfied of the fact, he or it shall record a finding
to that effect and shall postpone further proceedings in the case.
(2) The trial of the fact of the unsoundness of mind and incapacity of
the accused shall be deemed to be part of his trial before the
Magistrate or Court.
Release of lunatic pending investingaion or trial.
1. Ins. by Act 43 of 1983, s. 4.
CrPC Section 330. Release of lunatic pending investingaion or trial.
(1) Whenever a person is found, under section 328 or section 329, to
be of unsound mind and incapable of making his defence, the Magistrate
or Court, as the case may be, whether the case is one in which bail
may be taken or not, may release him on sufficient security being
given that he shall be properly taken care of and shall be prevented
from doing injury to himself or to any other person, and for his
appearance when required before the Magistrate or Court or such
officer as the Magistrate or Court appoints in this behalf.
(2) If the case is one in which, in the opinion of the Magistrate or
Court, bail should not be taken, or if sufficient security is not
given, the Magistrate or Court, as the case may be, shall order the
accused to be detained in safe custody in such place and manner as he
or it may think fit, and shall report the action taken to the State
Government: Provided that no order for the detention of the accused in
a lunatic asylum shall be made otherwise than in accordance with such
rules as the State Government may have made under the Indian Lunacy
Act, 1912 (4 of 1912 ).
CrPC Section 331. Resumption of inquiry or trial.
(1) Whenever an inquiry or a trial is postponed under section 328 or
section 329, the Magistrate or Court, as the case may be, may at any
time after the person concerned has ceased to be of unsound mind,
resume the inquiry or trial, and require the accused to appear or be
brought before such Magistrate or Court.
(2) When the accused has been released under section 330, and the
sureties for his appearance produce him to the officer whom the Magis-
trate or Court appoints in this behalf, the certificate of such
officer that the accused is capable of making his defence shall be
receivable in evidence.
CrPC Section 332. Procedure on accused appearing before Magistrate or Court.
(1) If, when the accused appears or is again brought before the
Magistrate or Court, as the case may be, the Magistrate or Court
considers him capable of making his defence, the inquiry or trial
shall proceed.
(2) If the Magistrate or Court considers the accused to be still in
capable of making his defence, the Magistrate or Court shall act
accordIng to the provisions of section 328 or section 329, as the case
may be, and if the accused is, found to be of unsound mind and
consequently incapable of, making his defence, shall deal with such
accused in accordance with the provisions of section 330.
CrPC Section 333. When accused appears to have been of sound mind. When the
accused appears to be of sound mind at the time of inquiry or trial, and
the Magistrate is satisfied from the evidence given
before him that there is reason to believe that the accused committed an
act, which, if he had been of sound mind, would have been an offence,
and that he was, at the time when the act was committed, by reason of
unsoundness of mind, incapable of knowing the nature of the act or that
it was wrong or contrary to law, the Magistrate shall proceed with the
case, and, if the accused ought to be tried by the Court of Session,
commit him for trial before the Court of Session.
CrPC Section 334. Judgement of acquittal on ground of unsoundness of mind.
Whenever any person is acquitted upon the ground that, at the time at
which he is alleged to have committed an offence, he was, by reason of
unsoundness of mind, incapable of knowing the nature of the act alleged
as constituting the offence, or that it was wrong or contrary to law,
the finding shall state specifically whether he committed the act or
not.
CrPC Section 335. Person acquitted on such ground to be detained in safe
custody.
(1) Whenever the finding states that the accused person com- mitted
the act alleged, the Magistrate or Court before whom or which the
trial has been held, shall, if such act would, but for the incapacity
found, have constituted an offence,-
(a) order such person to be detained in safe custody in such place
and manner as the Magistrate or Court thinks fit; or
(b) order such person to be delivered to any relative or friend of
such person.
(2) No order for the detention of the accused in a lunatic asylum
shall be made under clause (a) of sub- section (1) otherwise than in
accordance with such rules as the State Government may have made under
the Indian Lunacy Act, 1912 (4 of 1912 ).
(3) No order for the delivery of the accused to a relative or friend
shall be made under clause (b) of sub- section (1), except upon the
application of such relative or friend and on his giving security to
the satisfaction of the Magistrate or Court that the person delivered
shall-
(a) be properly taken care of and prevented from doing injury to
himself or to any other person;
(b) be produced for the inspection of such officer, and at such
times and places, as the State Government may direct.
(4) The Magistrate or Court shall report to the State Government the
action taken under sub- section (1).
CrPC Section 336. Power of State Government to empower officer in charge to
discharge. The State Government may empower the officer in charge of the
jail in which a person is confined under the provisions of section 330.
or section 335 to discharge all or any of the functions of the
Inspector- General of Prisons under section 337 or section 338.
CrPC Section 337. Procedure where lunatic prisoner is reported capable of
making his defence. If such person is detained under the provisions of
sub- section (2) of section 330 and in the case of a person detained in
a jail, the Inspector- General of Prisons, or, in the case of a person
detained in a lunatic asylum, the visitors of such asylum or any two of
them shall certify that, in his or their opinion, such person is capable
of making his defence, he shall be taken before the Magistrate or Court,
as the case may be, at such time as the Magistrate or Court appoints,
and the Magistrate or Court shall deal with such person under the
provisions of section 332; and the certificate of such Inspector-
General or visitors as aforesaid shall be receivable as evidence.
CrPC Section 338. Procedure where lunatic detained is declared fit to be
released.
(1) If such person is detained under the provisions of sub- section
(2) of section 330, or section 335, and such Inspector- General or
visitors shall certify that, in his or their judgment, he may be
released without danger of his doing injury to himself or to any other
person, the State Government may thereupon order him to be released,
or to be detained in custody, or to be transferred to a public lunatic
asylum if he has not been already sent to such an asylum; and, in case
it orders him to be transferred to an asylum, may appoint a
Commission, consisting of a judicial and two medical officers.
(2) Such Commission shall make a formal inquiry into the state of mind
of such person, take such evidence as is necessary, and shall report
to the State Government, which may order his release or detention as
it thinks fit.
CrPC Section 339. Delivery of lunatic to care of relative or friend.
(1) Whenever any relative or friend of any person detained under the
provisions of section 330 or section 335 desires that he shall be
delivered to his care and custody, the State Government may, upon the
application of such relative or friend and on his giving security to
the satisfaction of such State Government, that the person delivered
shall-
(a) be properly taken care of and prevented from doing injury to
himself or to any other person;
(b) be produced for the inspection of such officer, and at such time
and places, as the State Government may direct;
(c) in the case of a person detained under sub- section (2) of
section 330, be produced when required before such Magistrate or
Court, order such person to be delivered to such relative or friend.
(2) If the person so delivered is accused of any offence, the trial of
which has been postponed by reason of his being of unsound mind and
incapable of making his defence, and the inspecting officer referred
to in clause (b) of sub- section (1), certifies at any time to the
Magistrate or Court that such person is capable of making his defence,
such Magistrate or Court shall call upon the relative or friend to
whom such accused was delivered to produce him before the Magistrate
or Court; and, upon such production the Magistrate or Court shall
proceed in accordance with the provisions of section 332, and the
certificate of the inspecting officer shall be receivable as evidence.
CHAP PROVISIONS AS TO OFFENCES AFFECTING THE ADMINISTRATION OF JUSTICE
CHAPTER XXVI PROVISIONS AS TO OFFENCES AFFECTING THE ADMINISTRATION OF
JUSTICE
CrPC Section 340. Procedure in cases mentioned in section 195.
(1) When, upon an application made to it in this behalf or otherwise,
any Court is of opinion that it is expedient in the interests of
justice that an inquiry should be made into any offence referred to in
clause (b) of sub- section (1) of section 195, which appears to have
been committed in or in relation to a proceeding in that Court or, as
the case may be, in respect of a document produced or given in
evidence in a proceeding in that Court, such Court may, after such
preliminary inquiry, if any, as it thinks necessary,-
(a) record a finding to that effect;
(b) make a complaint thereof in writing;
(c) send it to a Magistrate of the first class having jurisdiction;
(d) take sufficient security for the appearance of the accused
before such Magistrate, or if the alleged offence is non- bailable
and the Court thinks it necessary so to do, send the accused in
custody to such Magistrate; and
(e) bind over any person to appear and give evidence before such
Magistrate.
(2) The power conferred on a Court by sub- section (1) in respect of
an offence may, in any case where that Court has neither made a
complaint under sub- section (1) in respect of that offence nor
rejected an application for the making of such complaint, be exercised
by the Court to which such former Court is subordinate within the
meaning of sub- section (4) of section 195.
(3) A complaint made under this section shall be signed,-
(a) where the Court making the complaint is a High Court, by such
officer of the Court as the Court may appoint;
(b) in any other case, by the presiding officer of the Court.
(4) In this section,” Court” has the same meaning as in section 195.
CrPC Section 341. Appeal.
(1) Any person on whose application any Court other than a High Court
has refused to make a complaint under sub- section (1) or sub- section
(2) of section 340, or against whom such a complaint has been made by
such Court, may appeal to the Court to which such former Court is
subordinate within the meaning of sub- section (4) of section 195, and
the superior Court may thereupon, after notice to the parties
concerned, direct the withdrawal of the complaint, or, as the case may
be, making of the complaint which such former Court might have made
under section 340, and if it makes such complaint, the provisions of
that section shall apply accordingly.
(2) An order under this section, and subject to any such order, an
order under section 340, shall be final, and shall not be subject to
revision.
CrPC Section 342. Power to order costs. Any Court dealing with an application
made to it for filing a complaint under section 340 or an appeal under
section 341, shall have power to make such order as to costs as may be
just.
CrPC Section 343. Procedure of Magistrate taking cognizance.
(1) A Magistrate to whom a complaint is made under section 340 or
section 341 shall, notwithstanding anything contained in Chapter XV,
proceed, as far as may be, to deal with the case as if it were
instituted on a police report.
(2) Where it is brought to the notice of such Magistrate, or of any
other Magistrate to whom the case may have been transferred, that an
appeal is pending against the decision arrived at in the judicial
proceeding out of which the matter has arisen, he may, if he thinks
fit, at any stage, adjourn the hearing of the case until such appeal
is decided.
CrPC Section 344. Summary procedure for trial for giving false evidence.
(1) If, at the time of delivery of any judgment or final order
disposing of any judicial proceeding, a Court of Session or Magistrate
of the first class expresses an opinion to the effect that any witness
ap- pearing in such proceeding had knowingly or wilfully given false
evidence or had fabricated false evidence with the intention that such
evidence should be used in such proceeding, it or he may, if satisfied
that it is necessary and expedient in the interest of justice that the
witness should
be tried summarily for giving or fabricating, as the case may be,
false evidence, take cognizance of the offence and may, after giving
the offender a reasonable opportunity of showing cause why he should
not be punished for such offence, try such offender summarily and
sentence him to imprisonment for a term which may extend to three
months, or to fine which may extend to five hundred rupees, or with
both.
(2) In every such case the Court shall follow, as nearly as may be
practicable, the procedure prescribed for summary trials.
(3) Nothing in this section shall affect the power of the Court to
make a complaint under section 340 for the offence, where it does not
choose to proceed under this section.
(4) Where, after any action is initiated under sub- section (1), it is
made to appear to the Court of Session or Magistrate of the first
class that an appeal or an application for revision has been preferred
or filed against the judgment or order in which the opinion referred
to in that sub- section has been expressed, it or he shall stay
further proceedings of the trial until the disposal of the appeal or
the application for revision, as the case may be, and thereupon the
further proceedings of the trial shall abide by the results of the
appeal or application for revision.
CrPC Section 345. Procedure in certain cases of contempt.
(1) When any such offence as is described in section 175, section 178,
section 179, section 180 or section 228 of the Indian Penal Code (45
of 1860 ), is committed in the view or presence of any Civil, Criminal
or Revenue Court, the Court may cause the offender to be detained in
custody and may, at any time before the rising of the Court on the
same day, take cognizance of the offence and, after giving the
offender a reasonable opportunity of showing cause why he should not
be punished under this section, sentence the offender to fine not
exceeding two hundred rupees, and, in default of payment of fine, to
simple imprisonment for a term which may extend to one month, unless
such fine be sooner paid.
(2) In every such case the Court shall record the facts constituting
the offence, with the statement (if any) made by the offender, as well
as the finding and sentence.
(3) If the offence is under section 228 of the Indian Penal Code (45
of 1860 ), the record shall show the nature and stage of the judicial
proceeding in which the Court interrupted or insulted was sitting, and
the nature of the interruption or insult.
CrPC Section 346. Procedure where Court considers, that case should not be
dealt with under section 345.
(1) If the Court in any case considers that a person accused of any of
the offences referred to in section 345 and committed in its view or
presence should be imprisoned otherwise than in default of payment
of fine, or that a fine exceeding two hundred rupees should be imposed
upon him, or such Court is for any other reason of opinion that the
case should not be disposed of under section 345, such Court, after
recording the facts constituting the offence and the statement of the
accused as hereinbefore provided, may forward the case to a Magistrate
having jurisdiction to try the same, and may require security to be
given for the appearance of such person before such Magistrate, or if
sufficient security is not given shall forward such person in custody
to such Magistrate.
(2) The Magistrate to whom any case is forwarded under this section
shall proceed to deal with, as far as may be, as if it were instituted
on a police report.
CrPC Section 347. When Registrar or Sub- Registrar to be deemed a Civil
Court. When the State Government so directs, any Registrar or any Sub-
Registrar appointed under the 1
Registration Act, 1908 (16 of 1908 ), shall be deemed to be a Civil
Court within the meaning of sections 345 and 346.
CrPC Section 348. Discharge of offender on submission of apology. When any
Court has under section 345 adjudged an offender to punishment, or has
under section 346 forwarded him to a Magistrate for trial, for refusing
or omitting to do anything which he was lawfully required to do or for
any intentional insult or interruption, the Court may, in its
discretion, discharge the offender or remit the punishment on his
submission to the order or requisition of such Court, or on apology
being made to its satisfaction.
CrPC Section 349. Imprisonment or committal of person refusing to answer or
produce document. If any witness or person called to produce a document
or thing before a Criminal Court refuses to answer such questions as are
put to him or to produce any document or thing in his possession or
power which the Court requires him to produce, and does not, after a
reasonable opportunity has been, given, to him so to do, offer any
reasonable excuse for such refusal, such Court may, for reasons to be
recorded in writing, sentence him to simple imprisonment, or by warrant
under the hand of the Presiding Magistrate or Judge commit him to the
custody of an officer of the Court for any term not exceeding seven
days, unless in the meantime, such person consents to be examined and to
answer, or to produce the document or thing and in the event of his
persisting in his refusal, he may be dealt with according to the
provisions of section 345 or section 346.
CrPC Section 350. Summary procedure for punishment for non- attendance by a
witness in obedience to summons.
(1) If any witness being summoned to appear before a Criminal Court is
legally bound to appear at a certain place and time in obedience to
the summons and without just excuse neglects or refuses to attend at
that place or time or departs from the place where he has to attend
before the time at which it is lawful for him to depart, and the Court
before which the witness is to appear is satisfied that it is
expedient in the interests of justice that such a witness should be
tried summarily, the Court may take cognizance of the offence and
after giving the offender an opportunity of showing cause why he
should not be punished under this section, sentence him to fine not
exceeding one hundred rupees.
(2) In every such case the Court shall follow, as nearly as may be
practicable, the procedure prescribed for summary trials.
CrPC Section 351. Appeals from convictions under sections 344, 345, 349, and
350.
(1) Any person sentenced by any Court other than a High Court under
section 344, section 345, section 349, or section 350 may, not-
withstanding anything contained in this Code appeal to the Court to
which decrees or orders made in such Court are ordinarily appealable.
(2) The provisions of Chapter XXIX shall, so far as they are
applicable, apply to appeals under this section, and the Appellate
Court may alter or reverse the finding, or reduce or reverse the
sentence appealed against.
(3) An appeal from such conviction by a Court of Small Causes shall
lie to the Court of Session for the sessions division within which
such Court is situate.
(4) An appeal from such conviction by any Registrar or Sub- Registrar
deemed to be a Civil Court by virtue of a direction issued under
section 347 shall lie to the Court of Session for the sessions
division within which the office of such Registrar or Sub- Registrar
is situate.
CrPC Section 352. Certain Judges and Magistrates not to try certain offences
when committed before themselves. Except as provided in sections 344,
345, 349 and 350, no Judge of a Criminal Court (other than a Judge of a
High Court) or Magistrate shall try any person for any offence referred
to in section 195, when such offence is committed before himself or in
contempt of his authority, or is brought under his notice as such Judge
or Magistrate in the course of a judicial proceeding. CHAP THE JUDGMENT.
CHAPTER XXVII THE JUDGMENT
CrPC Section 353. Judgment.
(1) The judgment in every trial in any Criminal Court of original
jurisdiction shall be pronounced in open Court by the Presiding
officer
immediately after the termination of the trial or at some subsequent
time of which notice shall be given to the parties or their pleaders,-
(a) by delivering the whole of the judgment; or
(b) by reading out the whole of the judgment; or
(c) by reading out the operative part of the judgment and explaining
the substance of the judgment in a language which is understood by
the accused or his pleader.
(2) Where the judgment is delivered under clause (a) of sub- section
(1), the presiding officer shall cause it to be taken down in short-
hand, sign the transcript and every page thereof as soon as it is made
ready, and write on it the date of the delivery of the judgment in
open Court.
(3) Where the judgment or the operative part thereof is read out under
clause (b) or clause (c) of sub- section (1), as the case may be, it
shall be dated and signed by the presiding officer in open Court, and
if it is not written with his own hand, every page of the judgment
shall be signed by him.
(4) Where the judgment is pronounced in the manner specified in clause
(c) of sub- section (1), the whole judgment or a copy thereof shall be
immediately made available for the perusal of the parties or their
pleaders free of cost.
(5) If the accused is in custody, he shall be brought up to hear the
judgment pronounced.
(6) If the accused is not in custody, he shall be required by the
Court to attend to hear the judgment pronounced, except where his
personal attendance during the trial has been dispensed with and the
sentence is one of fine only or he is acquitted: Provided that, where
there are more accused than one, and one or more of them do not attend
the Court on the date on which the judgment is to be pronounced, the
presiding officer may, in order to avoid undue delay in the disposal
of the case, pronounce the judgment notwithstanding their absence.
(7) No judgment delivered by any Criminal Court shall be deemed to be
invalid by reason only of the absence of any party or his pleader on
the day or from the place notified for the delivery thereof, or of any
omission to serve, or defect in serving, on the parties or their
pleaders, or any of them, the notice of such day and place.
(8) Nothing in this section shall be construed to limit in any way the
extent of the provisions of section 465.
CrPC Section 354. Language and contents of judgment.
(1) Except as otherwise expressly provided by this Code, every
judgment referred to in section 353,-
(a) shall be written in the language of the Court;
(b) shall contain the point or points for determination, the
decision thereon and the reasons for the decision;
(c) shall specify the offence (if any) of which, and the section of
the Indian Penal Code (45 of 1860 ) or other law under which, the
accused is convicted and the punishment to which he is sentenced;
(d) if it be a judgment of acquittal, shall state the offence of
which the accused is acquitted and direct that he be set at liberty.
(2) When the conviction is under the Indian Penal Code (45 of 1860 ),
and it is doubtful under which of two sections, or under which Of two
parts of the same section, of that Code the offence falls, the Court
shall distinctly express the same, and pass judgment in the
alternative.
(3) When the conviction is for an offence punishable with death or, in
the alternative, with imprisonment for life or imprisonment for a term
of years, the judgment shall state the reasons for the sentence
awarded, and, in the case of sentence of death, the special reasons
for such sentence.
(4) When the conviction is for an offence punishable with imprisonment
for a term of one year or more, but the Court imposes a sentence of
imprisonment for a term of less than three months, it shall record its
reasons for awarding such sentence, unless the sentence is one of
imprisonment till the rising of the Court or unless the case was tried
summarily under the provisions of this Code.
(5) When any person is sentenced to death, the sentence shall direct
that he be hanged by the neck till he is dead.
(6) Every order under section 117 or sub- section (2) of section 138
and every final order made under section 125, section 145 or section
147 shall contain the point or points for determination, the decision
thereon and the reasons for the decision.
CrPC Section 355. Metropolitan Magistrate’ s judgment. Instead of recording a
judgment in the manner hereinbefore provided, a Metropolitan Magistrate
shall record the following particulars, namely:-
(a) the serial number of the case;
(b) the date of the commission of the offence;
(c) the name of the complainant (if any);
(d) the name of the accused person, and his parentage and residence;
(e) the offence complained of or proved;
(f) the plea of the accused and his examination (if any);
(g) the final order;
(h) the date of such order;
(i) in all cases in which an appeal lies from the final order either
under section 373 or under sub- section (3) of section 374, a brief
statement of the reasons for the decision.
CrPC Section 356. Order for notifying address of previously convicted
offender.
(1) When any person, having been convicted by a Court in India of an
offence punishable under section 215, section 489A, section 489B,
section 489C or section 489D of the Indian Penal Code, (45 of 1860 )
or of any offence punishable under Chapter XII or Chapter XVII of that
Code, with imprisonment for a term of three years or upwards, is again
convicted of any offence punishable under any of those sections or
Chapters with imprisonment for a term of three years or upwards by any
Court other than that of a Magistrate of the second class, such Court
may, if it thinks fit, at the time of passing a sentence of
imprisonment on such person, also order that his residence and any
change of, or absence from, such residence after release be notified
as hereinafter provided for a term not exceeding five years from the
date of the expiration of such sentence.
(2) The provisions of sub- section (1) with reference to the offences
named therein, apply also to criminal conspiracies to commit such
offences and to the abetment of such offences and attempts to commit
them.
(3) If such conviction is set aside on appeal or otherwise, such order
shall become void.
(4) An order under this section may also be made by an Appellate Court
or by the High Court or Court of Session when exercising its powers of
revision.
(5) The State Government may, by notification, make rules to carry out
the provisions of this section relating to the notification of
residence or change of, or absence from, residence by released
convicts.
(6) Such rules may provide for punishment for the breach thereof and
any person charged with a breach of any such rule may be tried by a
Magistrate of competent jurisdiction in the district in which the
place last notified by him as his place of residence is situated.
CrPC Section 357. Order to pay compensation.
(1) When a Court imposes a sentence of fine or a sentence (including a
sentence of death) of which fine forms a part, the Court may, when
passing judgment, order the whole or any part of the fine recovered to
be applied-
(a) in defraying the expenses properly incurred in the prosecution;
(b) in the payment to any person of compensation for any loss or
injury caused by the offence, when compensation is, in the opinion
of the Court, recoverable by such person in a Civil Court;
(c) when any person is convicted of any offence for having caused
the death of another person or of having abetted the commission of
such an offence, in paying compensation to the persons who are,
under the Fatal Accidents Act, 1855 (13 of 1855 ), entitled to
recover damages from the person sentenced for the loss resulting to
them from such death;
(d) when any person is convicted of any offence which includes
theft, criminal misappropriation, criminal breach of trust, or
cheating, or of having dishonestly received or retained, or of
having voluntarily assisted in disposing of, stolen property knowing
or having reason to believe the same to be stolen, in compensating
any bona fide purchaser of such property for the loss of the same if
such property is restored to the possession of the person entitled
thereto.
(2) If the fine is imposed in a case which is subject to appeal, no
such payment shall be made before the period allowed for presenting
the appeal has elapsed, or, if an appeal be presented, before the
decision of the appeal.
(3) When a Court imposes a sentence, of which fine does not form a
part, the Court may, when passing judgment, order the accused person
to pay, by way of compensation, such amount as may be specified in the
order to the person who has suffered any loss or injury by reason of
the act for which the accused person has been so sentenced.
(4) An order under this section may also be made by an Appellate Court
or by the High Court or Court of Session when exercising its powers of
revision.
(5) At the time of awarding compensation in any subsequent civil suit
relating to the same matter, the Court shall take into account any sum
paid or recovered as compensation under this section.
CrPC Section 358. Compensation to persons groundlessly arrested.
(1) Whenever any person causes a police officer to arrest another
person, if it appears to the Magistrate by whom the case is heard that
there was no sufficient ground for causing such arrest, the Magistrate
may award such compensation, not exceeding one hundred rupees, to be
paid by the person so causing the arrest to the person so arrested,
for his loss of time and expenses in the matter, as the Magistrate
thinks fit.
(2) In such cases, if more persons than one are arrested, the
Magistrate may, in like manner, award to each of them such
compensation, not exceeding one hundred rupees, as such Magistrate
thinks fit.
(3) All compensation awarded under this section may be recovered as if
it were a fine, and, if it cannot be so recovered, the person by whom
it is payable shall be sentenced to simple imprisonment for such term
not exceeding thirty days as the Magistrate directs, unless such sum
is sooner paid.
CrPC Section 359. Order to pay costs in non- cognizable cases.
(1) Whenever any complaint of a non- cognizable offence is made to a
Court, the Court, if it convicts the accused, may, in addition to the
penalty imposed upon him, order him to pay to the complainant, in
whole or in part, the cost incurred by him in the prosecution, and may
further order that in default of payment, the accused shall suffer
simple imprisonment for a period not exceeding thirty days and such
costs may include any expenses incurred in respect of process- fees,
witnesses and pleader’ s fees which the Court may consider reasonable.
(2) An order under this section may also be made by an Appellate Court
or by the High Court or Court of Session when exercising its powers of
revision.
CrPC Section 360. Order to release on probation of good conduct or after
admonition.
(1) When any person not under twenty- one years of age is convicted of
an offence punishable with fine only or with imprisonment for a term
of seven years or less, or when any person under twenty- one years of
age or any woman is- convicted of an offence not punishable with death
or imprisonment for life, and no previous conviction is proved against
the offender, if it appears to the Court before which he is convicted,
regard being had to the age, character or antecedents of the offender,
and to the circumstances in which the offence was committed, that it
is expedient that the offender should be released on probation of good
conduct, the Court may, instead of sentencing him at once to any
punishment, direct that he be released on his entering into a bond
with or without sureties, to appear and receive sentence when called
upon during such period (not exceeding three years) as the Court may
direct and in the meantime to keep the peace and be of good behaviour:
Provided that where any first offender is convicted by a Magistrate of
the second class not specially empowered by the High Court, and the
Magistrate is of opinion that the powers conferred by this section
should be exercised, he shall record his opinion to that effect, and
submit the proceedings to a Magistrate of the first class, forwarding
the accused to, or taking bail for his appearance before, such
Magistrate, who shall dispose of the case in the manner provided by
sub- section (2).
(2) Where proceedings are submitted to a Magistrate of the first class
as provided by sub- section (1), such Magistrate may thereupon pass
such sentence or make such order as he might have passed or made if
the case had originally been heard by him, and, if he thinks further
inquiry or additional evidence on any point to be necessary, he may
make such inquiry or take such evidence himself or direct such inquiry
or evidence to be made or taken.
(3) In any case in which a person is convicted of theft, theft in a
building, dishonest misappropriation, cheating or any offence under
the Indian Penal Code (45 of 1860 ), punishable with not more than two
years’ imprisonment or any offence punishable with fine only and no
previous conviction is proved against him, the Court before which he
is so convicted may, if it thinks fit, having regard to the age,
character, antecedents or physical or mental condition of the offender
and to the trivial nature of the offence or any extenuating
circumstances under which the offence was committed, instead of
sentencing him to any punishment, release him after due admonition.
(4) An order under this section may be made by any Appellate Court or
by the High Court or Court of Session when exercising its powers of
revision.
(5) When an order has been made under this section in respect of any
offender, the High Court or Court of Session may, on appeal when there
is a right of appeal to such Court, or when exercising its powers of
revision, set aside such order, and in lieu thereof pass sentence on
such offender according to law: Provided that the High Court or Court
of Session shall not under this sub- section inflict a greater
punishment than might have been inflicted by the Court by which the
offender was convicted.
(6) The provisions of sections 121, 124 and 373 shall, so far as may
be, apply in the case of sureties offered in pursuance of the
provisions of this section.
(7) The Court, before directing the release of an offender under sub-
section (1), shall be satisfied that an offender or his surety (if
any) has a fixed place of abode or regular occupation in the place for
which the Court acts or in which the offender is likely to live during
the period named for the observance of the conditions.
(8) If the Court which convicted the offender, or a Court which could
have dealt with the offender in respect of his original offence, is
satisfied that the offender has failed to observe any of the
conditions of his recognizance, it may issue a warrant for his
apprehension.
(9) An offender, when apprehended on any such warrant, shall be
brought forthwith before the Court issuing the warrant, and such Court
may either remand him in custody until the case is heard or admit him
to bail with a sufficient surety conditioned on his appearing for
sentence and such Court may, after hearing the case, pass sentence.
(10) Nothing in this section shall affect the provisions of the
Probation of Offenders Act, 1958 (20 of 1958 ), or the Children Act,
1960 (60 of 1960 ), or any other law for the time being in force for
the treatment, training or rehabilitation of youthful offenders.
CrPC Section 361. Special reasons to be recorded in certain cases. Where in
any case the Court could have dealt with,-
(a) an accused person under section 360 or under the provisions of the
Probation of Offenders Act, 1958 (20 of 1958 ), or
(b) a youthful offender under the Children Act, 1960 (60 of 1960 ), or
any other law for the time being in force for the treatment, training
or rehabilitation of youthful offenders, but has not done so, it shall
record in its judgment the special reasons for not having done so.
CrPC Section 362. Court not to after judgement. Save as otherwise provided by
this Code or by any other law for the time being in force, no Court,
when it has signed its judgment or final order disposing of a case,
shall alter or review the same except to correct a clerical or
arithmetical error.
CrPC Section 363. Copy of judgement to be given to the accused and other
persons.
(1) When the accused is sentenced to imprisonment, a copy of the
judgment shall, immediately after the pronouncement of the judgment,
be given to him free of cost.
(2) On the application of the accused, a certified copy of the
judgment, or when he so desires, a translation in his own language if
practicable or in the language of the Court, shall be given to him
without delay, and
such copy shall, in every case where the judgment is appealable by the
accused, be given free of cost: Provided that where a sentence of
death is passed or confirmed by the High Court, a certified copy of
the judgment shall be immediately given to the accused free of cost
whether or not he applies for the same.
(3) The provisions of sub- section (2) shall apply in relation to an
order under section 117 as they apply in relation to a judgment which
is appealable by the accused.
(4) When the accused is sentenced to death by any Court and an appeal
lies from such judgment as of right, the Court shall inform him of the
period within which, if he wishes to appeal, his appeal should be
preferred.
(5) Save as otherwise provided in sub- section (2), any person
affected by a judgment or order passed by a Criminal Court shall, on
an application made in this behalf and on payment of the prescribed
charges, be given a copy of such judgment or order or of any
deposition or other part of the record: Provided that the Court may,
if it thinks fit for some special reason, give it to him free of cost.
(6) The High Court may, by rules, provide for the grant of copies of
any judgment or order of a Criminal Court to any person who is not
affected by a judgment or order, on payment, by such person, of such
fees, and subject to such conditions, as the High Court may, by such
rules, provide.
CrPC Section 364. Judgement when to be translated. The original judgment
shall be filed with the record of the proceedings and where the original
is recorded in a language different from that of the Court and the
accused so requires, a translation thereof into the language of the
Court shall be added to such record.
CrPC Section 365. Court of Session to send copy of finding and sentence to
District Magistrate. In cases tried by the Court of Session or a Chief
Judicial Magistrate, the Court or such Magistrate, as the case may be,
shall forward a copy of its or his finding and sentence (if any) to the
District Magistrate within whose local jurisdiction the trial was held.
CHAP SUBMISSION OF DEATH SENTENCES FOR CONFIRMATION. CHAPTER XXVIII
SUBMISSION OF DEATH SENTENCES FOR CONFIRMATION
CrPC Section 366. Sentence of death to be submitted by Court of session for
confirmation.
(1) When the Court of Session passes a sentence of death, the
proceedings shall be submitted to the High Court, and the sentence
shall not be executed unless it is confirmed by the High Court.
(2) The Court passing the sentence shall commit the convicted person
to jail custody under a warrant.
CrPC Section 367. Power to direct further inquiry to be made or additional
evidence to be taken.
(1) If, when such proceedings are submitted, the High Court thinks
that a further inquiry should be made into, or additional evidence
taken upon, any point bearing upon the guilt or innocence of the
convicted person, it may make such inquiry or take such evidence
itself, or direct it to be made or taken by the Court of Session.
(2) Unless the High Court otherwise directs, the presence of the
convicted person may be dispensed with when such inquiry is made or
such evidence is taken.
(3) When the inquiry or evidence (if any) is not made or taken by the
High Court, the result of such inquiry or evidence shall be certified
to such Court.
CrPC Section 368. Power of High Court to confirm sentence or annul
conviction. In any case submitted under section 366, the High Court-
(a) may confirm the sentence, or pass any other sentence warranted by
law, or
(b) may annul the conviction, and convict the accused of any offence
of which the Court of Session might have convicted him, or order a new
trial on the same or an amended charge, or
(c) may acquit the accused person: Provided that no order of
confirmation shall be made under this section until the period allowed
for preferring an appeal has expired, or, if an appeal is presented
within such period, until such appeal is disposed of.
CrPC Section 369. Confirmation or new sentence to be signed by two Judges. In
every case so submitted, the confirmation of the sentence, or any new
sentence or order passed by the High Court, shall, when such Court
consists of two or more Judges, be made, passed and signed by at least
two of them.
CrPC Section 370. Procedure in case of difference of opinion. Where any such
case is heard before a Bench of Judges and such judges are equally
divided in opinion, the case shall be decided in the manner provided by
section 392.
CrPC Section 371. Procedure in cases submitted to High Court for
confirmation. In cases submitted by the Court of Session to the High
Court for the confirmation of a sentence of death, the proper officer of
the High Court shall, without delay, after the order of confirmation or
other order has been made by the High Court, send a copy of the order,
under the seal of the High Court and attested with his official
signature, to the Court of Session.
CHAP APPEALS. CHAPTER XXIX APPEALS
CrPC Section 372. No appeal to lie, unless otherwise provided. No appeal
shall lie from any judgment or order of a Criminal Court except as
provided for by this Code or any other law for the time being in force.
CrPC Section 373. Appeal from orders requiring security or refusal to accept
or rejecting surety for keeping peace or good behaviour. Any person,-
(i) who has been ordered under section 117 to give security for
keeping the peace or for good behaviour, or
(ii) who is aggrieved by any order refusing to accept or rejecting a
surety under section 121, may appeal against such order to the Court
of Session: Provided that nothing in this section shall apply to
persons the proceedings against whom are laid before a Sessions Judge
in accordance with the provisions of sub-, section (2) or sub- section
(4) of section 122.
CrPC Section 374. Appeals from convictions.
(1) Any person convicted on a trial held by a High Court in its
extraordinary original criminal jurisdiction may appeal to the Supreme
Court.
(2) Any person convicted on a trial held by a Sessions Judge or an
Additional Sessions Judge or on a trial held by any other Court in
which a sentence of imprisonment for more than seven years
2
has been passed against him or against any other person convicted at
the same trial], may appeal to the High Court.
(3) Save as otherwise provided in sub- section (2), any person,-
(a) convicted on a trial held by a Metropolitan Magistrate or
Assistant Sessions Judge or Magistrate of the first class, or of the
second class, or
(b) sentenced under section 325, or
(c) in respect of whom an order has been made or a sentence has been
passed under section 360 by any Magistrate, may appeal to the Court
of Session.
CrPC Section 375. No Appeal in certain cases when accused pleads guilty.
Notwithstanding anything contained in section 374, where an accused
person has pleaded guilty and has been convicted on such plea, there
shall be no appeal,-
(a) if the conviction is by a High Court; or
999999. 1 Subs. by Act 45 of 1976, s. 28 for” has been passed” (w.
e. f. 18- 12- 1978 ).
(b) if the conviction is by a Court of Session, Metropolitan
Magistrate or Magistrate of the first or second class, except as to
the extent or legality of the sentence.
CrPC Section 376. No appeal in petty cases. Notwithstanding anything
contained in section 374, there shall be no appeal by a convicted person
in any of the following cases, namely:-
(a) where a High Court passes only a sentence of imprisonment for a
term not exceeding six months or of fine not exceeding one thousand
rupees, or of both such imprisonment and fine;
(b) where a Court of Session or a Metropolitan Magistrate passes only
a sentence of imprisonment for a term not exceeding three months or of
fine not exceeding two hundred rupees, or of both such imprisonment
and fine;
(c) where a Magistrate of the first class passes only a sentence of
fine not exceeding one hundred rupees; or
(d) where, in a case tried summarily, a Magistrate empowered to act
under section 260 passes only a sentence of fine not exceeding two
hundred rupees: Provided that an appeal may be brought against any
such sentence if any other punishment is combined with it, but such
sentence shall not be appealable merely on the ground-
(i) that the person convicted is ordered to furnish security to keep
the peace; or
(ii) that a direction for imprisonment in default of payment of fine
is included in the sentence; or
(iii) that more than one sentence of fine is passed in the case, if
the total amount of fine imposed does not exceed the amount
hereinbefore specified in respect of the case.
CrPC Section 377. Appeal by the State Government against sentence.
(1) Save as otherwise provided in sub- section (2), the State
Government may, in any case of conviction on a trial held by any Court
other than a High Court, direct the Public Prosecutor to present an
appeal to the High Court against the sentence on the ground of its
inadequacy.
(2) if such conviction is in a case in which the offence has been
investigated by the Delhi Special Police Establishment, constituted
under the Delhi Special Police Establishment Act, 1946 (25 of 1946 )
or by any other agency empowered to make investigation into an offence
under any Central Act
other than this Code, 1 the Central Government may also
direct] the Public Prosecutor to present an appeal to the High Court
against the sentence on the ground of its inadequacy.
(3) When an appeal has been filed against the sentence on the ground
of its inadequacy, the High Court shall not enhance the sentence
except after giving to the accused a reasonable opportunity of showing
cause against such enhancement and while showing cause, the accused
may plead for his acquittal or for the reduction of the sentence.
CrPC Section 378. Appeal in case of acquittal.
(1) Save as otherwise provided in sub- section (2) and subject to the
provisions of sub- sections (3) and (5), the State Government may, in
any case, direct the Public Prosecutor to present an appeal to the
High Court from an original or appellate order of acquittal passed by
any Court other than a High Court 2 or an order of
acquittal passed by the Court of Session in revision.]
(2) If such an order of acquittal is passed in any case in which the
offence has been investigated by the Delhi Special Police
Establishment constituted under the Delhi Special Police Establishment
Act, 1946 (25 of 1946 ), or by any other agency empowered to make
investigation into an offence under any Central Act other than this
Code, the Central Government may also direct the Public Prosecutor to
present an appeal, subject to the provisions of sub- section (3), to
the High Court from the order of acquittal.
(3) No appeal under sub- section (1) or sub- section (2) shall be
entertained except with the leave of the High Court.
(4) If such an order of acquittal is passed in any case instituted
upon complaint and the High Court, on an application made to it by the
complainant in this behalf, grants special leave to appeal from the
order of acquittal, the complainant may present such an appeal to the
High Court.
(5) No application under sub- section (4) for the grant of special
leave to appeal from an order of acquittal shall be entertained by the
High Court after the expiry of six months, where the complainant is a
public servant, and sixty days in every other case, computed from the
date of that order of acquittal.
(6) If in any case, the application under sub- section (4) for the
grant of special leave to appeal from an order of acquittal is
refused, no appeal from that order of acquittal shall lie under sub-
section (1) or under sub- section (2).
1. Subs. by Act 45 of 1978, s. 29, for certain words (w. e. f. 18-
12- 1978 ).
2. Ins by s. 30, ibid. (w. e. f. 18- 12- 78).
CrPC Section 379. Appeal against conviction by High Court in certain cases.
Where the High Court has, on appeal, reversed an order of acquittal of
an accused person and convicted him and sentenced him to death or to
imprisonment for life or to imprisonment for a term of ten years or
more, he may appeal to the Supreme Court.
Special right of appeal in certain cases.
CrPC Section 380. Special right of appeal in certain cases. Notwithstanding
anything contained in this Chapter, when more persons than one are
convicted in one trial, and an appealable judgment or order has been
passed in respect of any of such persons, all or any of the persons
convicted at such trial shall have a right of appeal.
CrPC Section 381. Appeal to Court of Session how heard.
(1) Subject to the provisions of sub- section (2), an appeal to the
Court of Session or Sessions Judge shall be heard by the Sessions
Judge or by an Additional Sessions Judge: Provided that an appeal
against a conviction on a trial held by a Magistrate of the second
class may be heard and disposed of by an Assistant Sessions Judge or a
Chief Judicial Magistrate.
(2) An Additional Sessions Judge, Assistant Sessions Judge or a Chief
Judicial Magistrate shall hear only such appeals as the Sessions Judge
of the division may, by general or special order, make over to him or
as the High Court may, by special order, direct him to hear.
CrPC Section 382. Petition of appeal. Every appeal shall be made in the form
of a petition in writing presented by the appeallant or his pleader, and
every such petition shall (unless the Court to which it is presented
otherwise directs) be accompanied by a copy of the judgment or order
appealed against.
CrPC Section 383. Procedure when appellant in jail. If the appellant is in
jail, he may present his petition of appeal and the copies accompanying
the same to the officer in charge of the jail, who shall thereupon
forward such petition and copies to the proper Appellate Court.
CrPC Section 384. Summary dismissal of appeal.
(1) If upon examining the petition of appeal and copy of the judgment
received under section 382 or section 383, the Appellate Court
considers that there is no sufficient ground for interfering, it may
dismiss the appeal summarily: Provided that-
(a) no appeal presented under section 382 shall be dismissed unless
the appellant or his pleader has had a reasonable opportunity of
being heard in support of the same;
(b) no appeal presented under section 383 shall be dismissed except
after giving the appellant a reasonable opportunity of being
heard in support of the same, unless the Appellate Court con- siders
that the appeal is frivolous or that the production of the accused
in custody before the Court would involve such inconvenience as
would be disproportionate in the circumstances of the case;
(c) no appeal presented under section 383 shall be dismissed
summarily until the period allowed for preferring such appeal has
expired.
(2) Before dismissing an appeal under this section, the Court may call
for the record of the case.
(3) Where the Appellate Court dismissing an appeal under this section
is a Court of Session or of the Chief Judicial Magistrate, it shall
record its reasons for doing so.
(4) Where an appeal presented under section 383 has been dismissed
summarily under this section and the Appellate Court finds that
another petition of appeal duly presented under section 382 on behalf
of the same appellant has not been considered by it, that Court may,
notwithstanding anything contained in section 393, if satisfied that
it is necessary in the interests of justice so to do, hear and dispose
of such appeal in accordance with law.
CrPC Section 385. Procedure for hearing appeals not dismissed summarily.
(1) If the Appellate Court does not dismiss the appeal summarily, it
shall cause notice of the time and place at which such appeal will be
heard to be given-
(i) to the appellant or his pleader;
(ii) to such officer as the State Government may appoint in this
behalf;
(iii) if the appeal is from a judgment of conviction in a case
instituted upon complaint, to the complainant;
(iv) if the appeal is under section 377 or section 378, to the
accused, and shall also furnish such officer, complainant and
accused with a copy of the grounds of appeal.
(2) The Appellate Court shall then send for the record of the case, if
such record is not already available in that Court, and hear the
parties: Provided that if the appeal is only as to the extent or the
legality of the sentence, the Court may dispose of the appeal without
sending for the record.
(3) Where the only ground for appeal from a conviction is the alleged
severity of the sentence, the appellant shall not, except with the
leave of the Court, urge or be heard in support of any other ground.
CrPC Section 386. Power of the Appellate Court. After perusing such record
and hearing the appellant or his pleader, if he appears, and the Public
Prosecutor if he appears, and in case of an appeal under section 377 or
section 378, the accused, if he appears, the Appellate Court may, if it
considers that there is no sufficient ground for interfering, dismiss
the appeal, or may-
(a) in an appeal from an order or acquittal, reverse such order and
direct that further inquiry be made, or that the accused be re- tried
or committed for trial, as the case may be, or find him guilty and
pass sentence on him according to law;
(b) in an appeal from a conviction-
(i) reverse the finding and sentence and acquit or discharge the
accused, or order him to be re- tried by a Court of competent
jurisdiction subordinate to such Appellate Court or committed for
trial, or
(ii) alter the finding, maintaining the sentence, or
(iii) with or without altering the finding, alter the nature or the
extent, or the nature and extent, of the sentence, but not so as to
enhance the Same;
(c) in an appeal for enhancement of sentence-
(i) reverse the finding and sentence and acquit or discharge the
accused or order him to be re- tried by a Court competent to try the
offence, or
(ii) alter the finding maintaining the sentence, or
(iii) with or without altering the finding, alter the nature or the
extent, or the nature and extent, of the sentence, so as to enhance
or reduce the same;
(d) in an appeal from any other order, alter or reverse such order;
(e) make any amendment or any consequential or incidental order that
may be just or proper; Provided that the sentence shall not be
enhanced unless the accused has had an opportunity of showing cause
against such enhancement: Provided further that the Appellate Court
shall not inflict greater punishment for the offence which in its
opinion the accused has committed, than might have been inflicted for
that offence by the Court passing the order or sentence under appeal.
CrPC Section 387. Judgments of subordinate Appellate Court. The rules
contained in Chapter XXVII as to the judgment of criminal Court of
original jurisdiction shall apply, so far as may be practice-
able, to the judgement in appeal of a Court of Session of Chief Judicial
Magistrate: Provided that, unless the Appellate Court otherwise directs,
the accused shall not be brought up, or required to attend, to hear
judgment delivered.
CrPC Section 388. Order of High Court on appeal to be certificated to lower
Court.
(1) Whenever a case is decided on appeal by the High Court under this
Chapter, it shall certify its judgment or order to the Court by which
the finding, sentence or order appealed against was recorded or passed
and if such Court is that of a Judicial Magistrate other than the
Chief Judicial Magistrate, the High Court’ s judgment or order shall
be sent through the Chief Judicial Magistrate; and if such Court is
that of an Executive Magistrate, the High Court’ s judgment or order
shall be sent through the District Magistrate.
(2) The Court to which the High Court certifies its judgment or order
shall thereupon make such orders as are conformable to the judgment or
order of the High Court; and, if necessary, the record shall be
amended in accordance therewith.
CrPC Section 389. Suspension of sentence pending the appeal; release of
appellant on bail.
(1) Pending any appeal by a convicted person, the Appellate Court may,
for reasons to be recorded by it in writing, order that the execution
of the sentence or order appealed against be suspended and, also, if
he is in confinement, that he be released on bail, or on his own bond.
(2) The power conferred by this section on an Appellate Court may be
exercised also by the High Court in the case of an appeal by a
convicted person to a Court subordinate thereto.
(3) Where the convicted person satisfies the Court by which he is
convicted that he intends to present an appeal, the Court shall,-
(i) where such person, being on bail, is sentenced to imprisonment
for a term not exceeding three years, or
(ii) where the offence of which such person has been convicted is a
bailable one, and he is on bail, order that the convicted person be
released on bail, unless there are special reasons for refusing
bail, for such period as will afford sufficient time to present the
appeal and obtain the orders of the Appellate Court under sub-
section (1); and the sentence of imprisonment shall, so long as he
is so released on bail, be deemed to be suspended.
(4) When the appellant is ultimately sentenced to imprisonment for a
term or to imprisonment for life, the time during which he is so
released shall be excluded in computing the term for which he is so
sentenced.
CrPC Section 390. Arrest of accused in appeal from acquittal. When an appeal
is presented under section 378, the High Court may issue a warrant
directing that the accused be arrested and brought before it or any
subordinate Court, and the Court before which he is brought may commit
him to prison pending the disposal of the appeal or admit him to bail.
CrPC Section 391. Appellate Court may take further evidence or direct it to
be taken.
(1) In dealing with any appeal under this Chapter, the Appellate
Court, if it thinks additional evidence to be necessary, shall record
its reasons and may either take such evidence itself, or direct it to
be taken by a Magistrate, or when the Appellate Court is a High Court,
by a Court of Session or a Magistrate.
(2) When the additional evidence is taken by the Court of Session or
the Magistrate, it or he shall certify such evidence to the Appellate
Court, and such Court shall thereupon proceed to dispose of the
appeal.
(3) The accused or his pleader shall have the right to be present when
the additional evidence is taken.
(4) The taking of evidence under this section shall be subject to the
provisions of Chapter XXIII, as if it were an inquiry.
CrPC Section 392. Procedure where Judges of Court of Appeal are equally
divided. When an appeal under this Chapter is heard by a High Court
before a Bench of Judges and they are divided in opinion, the appeal,
with their opinions, shall be laid before another Judge of that Court,
and that Judge, after such hearing as he thinks fit, shall deliver his
opinion, and the judgment or order shall follow that opinion: Provided
that if one of the Judges constituting the Bench, or, where the appeal
is laid before another Judge under this section, that Judge, so
requires, the appeal shall be re- heard and decided by a larger Bench of
Judges.
CrPC Section 393. Finality of judgments and orders on appeal. Judgments and
orders passed by an Appellate Court upon an appeal shall be final,
except in the cases provided for in section 377, section 378, sub-
section (4) of section 384 or Chapter XXX: Provided, that
notwithstanding the final disposal of an appeal against conviction in
any case, the Appellate Court may hear and dispose of, oil the merits,-
(a) an appeal against acquittal under section 378, arising out of the
same case, or
(b) an appeal for the enhancement of sentence under section 377,
arising out of the same case.
CrPC Section 394. Abatement of appeals.
(1) Every appeal under section 377 or section 378 shall finally abate
on the death of the accused.
(2) Every other appeal under this Chapter (except an appeal from a
sentence of fine) shall finally abate on the death of the appellant:
Provided that where the appeal is against a conviction and sentence of
death or of imprisonment, and the appellant dies during the pendency
of the appeal, any of his near relatives may, within thirty days of
the death of the appellant, apply to the Appellate Court for leave to
continue the appeal; and if leave is granted, the appeal shall not
abate. Explanation.- In this section,” near relative” means a parent,
spouse, lineal descendant, brother or sister. CHAP REFERENCE AND
REVISION. CHAPTER XXX REFERENCE AND REVISION
CrPC Section 395. Reference to High Court.
(1) Where any Court is satisfied that a case pending before it
involves a question as to the validity of any Act, Ordinance or
Regulation or of any provision contained in an Act, Ordinance or
Regulation, the determination of which is necessary for the disposal
of the case, and is of opinion that such Act, Ordinance, Regulation or
provision is invalid or inoperative, but has not been so declared by
the High Court to which that Court is subordinate or by the Supreme
Court, the Court shall state a case setting out its opinion and the
reasons therefor, and refer the same for the decision of the High
Court. Explanation.- In this section,” Regulation” means any
Regulation as defined in the General Clauses Act, 1897 (10 of 1897 ),
or in the General Clauses Act of a State.
(2) A Court of Session or a Metropolitan Magistrate may, if it or he
thinks fit in any case pending before it or him to which the
provisions of sub- section (1) do not apply, refer for the decision of
the High Court any question of law arising in the hearing of such
case.
(3) Any Court making a reference to the High Court under sub- section
(1) or sub- section (2) may, pending the decision of the High Court
thereon, either commit the accused, to jail or release him on bail to
appear when called upon.
CrPC Section 396. Disposal of case according to decision of High Court.
(1) When a question has been so referred, the High Court shall pass
such order thereon as it thinks fit, and shall cause a copy of such
order to be sent to the Court by which the reference was made, which
shall dispose of the case conformably to the said order.
(2) The High Court may direct by whom the costs of such reference
shall be paid.
CrPC Section 397. Calling for records to exercise powers of revision.
(1) The High Court or any Sessions Judge may call for and examine the
record of any proceeding before any inferior Criminal Court situate
within its or his local jurisdiction for the purpose of satisfying
itself or himself as to the correctness, legality or propriety of any
finding, sentence or order,- recorded or passed, and as to the
regularity of any proceedings of such inferior Court, and may, when
calling for such record, direct that the execution of any sentence or
order be suspended, and if the accused is in confinement, that he be
released on bail or on his own bond pending the examination of the
record. Explanation.- All Magistrates whether Executive or Judicial,
and whether exercising original or appellate jurisdiction, shall be
deemed to be inferior to the Sessions Judge for the purposes of this
sub- section and of section 398.
(2) The powers of revision conferred by sub- section (1) shall not be
exercised in relation to any interlocutory order passed in any appeal,
inquiry, trial or other proceeding.
(3) If an application under this section has been made by any person
either to the High Court or to the Sessions Judge, no further
application by the same person shall be entertained by the other of
them.
CrPC Section 398. Power to order inquiry. On examining any record under
section 397 or otherwise, the High Court or the Sessions Judge may
direct the Chief Judicial Magistrate by himself or by any of the
Magistrate subordinate to him to make, and the Chief Judicial Magistrate
may himself make or direct any subordinate Magistrate to make, further
inquiry into any complaint which has been dismissed under section 203 or
sub- section (4) of section 204, or into the case of any person accused
of an offence who has been discharged: Provided that no Court shall make
any direction under this section for inquiry into the case of any person
who has been discharged unless such person has had an opportunity of
showing cause why such direction should not be made.
CrPC Section 399. Sessions Judge’ s powers of revision.
(1) In the case of any proceeding the record of which has been called
for by himself, the Sessions judge may exercise all or any of the
powers which may be exercised by the High Court under sub- section (1)
of section 401.
(2) Where any proceeding by way of revision is commenced before a
Sessions Judge under sub- section (1), the provisions of sub- sections
(2), (3), (4) and (5) of section 401 shall, so far as may be, apply to
such proceeding and references in the said sub- sections to the High
Court shall be construed as references to the Sessions Judge.
(3) Where any application for revision is made by or on behalf of an
person before the Sessions Judge, the decision of the Sessions Judge
thereon in relation to such person shall be final and no further
proceeding by Way of revision at the instance of such person shall be
entertained by the High Court or any other Court.
CrPC Section 400. Power of Additional Sessons Judge. An Additional Sessions
Judge shall have and may exercise all the powers of a Sessions Judge
under this Chapter in respect of any case which may be transferred to
him by or under any general or special order of the Sessions Judge.
CrPC Section 401. High Court’ s Powers of revisions.
(1) In the case of any proceeding the record of which has been called
for by itself or Which otherwise comes to its knowledge, the High
Court may, in its discretion, exercise any of the powers conferred on
a Court of Appeal by sections 386, 389, 390 and 391 or on a Court of
Session by section 307 and, when the Judges composing the Court of
revision are equally divided in opinion, the case shall be disposed of
in the manner provided by section 392.
(2) No order under this section shall be made to the prejudice of the
accused or other person unless he has had an opportunity of being
heard either personally or by pleader in his own defence.
(3) Nothing in this section shall be deemed to authorise a High Court
to convert a finding of acquittal into one of conviction.
(4) Where under this Code an appeal lies and no appeal is brought, no
proceeding by way of revision shall be entertained at the instance of
the party who could have appealed.
(5) Where under this Code tan appeal lies but an application for
revision has been made to the High Court by any person and the High
Court Is satisfied that such application was made under the erroneous
belief that no appeal lies thereto and that it is necessary in the
interests of justice
so to do, the High Court may treat the application for revision as a
petition of appeal and deal with the same accordingly.
CrPC Section 402. Powers of High Court to withdraw or tranfer revision cases.
(1) Whenever one or more persons convicted at the same trial makes or
make application to a High Court for revision and any other person
convicted at the same trial makes an application to the Sessions Judge
for revision, the High Court shall decide, having regard to the
general convenience of the parties and the importance of the questions
involved, which of the two Courts should finally dispose of the
applications for revision and when the High Court decides that all the
applications for revision should be disposed of by itself, the High
Court shall direct that the applications for revision pending before
the Sessions Judge be transferred to itself and where the High Court
decides that it is not necessary for it to dispose of the applications
for revision, it shall direct that the applications for revision made
to it be transferred to the Sessions Judge.
(2) Whenever any application for revision is transferred to the High
Court, that Court shall deal with the same as if it were an
application duly made before itself.
(3) Whenever any application for revision is transferred to the
Session Judge, that Judge shall deal with the same as if it were an
application duly made before himself.
(4) Where an application for revision is transferred by the High Court
to the Sessions Judge, no further application for revision shall lie
to the High Court or to any other Court at the instance of the person
or persons whose applications for revision have been disposed of by
the Session Judge.
CrPC Section 403. Option of Court to hear parties. Save as otherwise
expressly provided by this Code, no party has any right to be heard
either personally or by pleader before any Court exercising its powers
of revision; but the Court may, if it thinks fit, when exercising such
powers, hear any party either personally or by pleader.
CrPC Section 404. Statement by Metropolitan Magistrate of ground of his
decision to be considered by High Court. When the record of any trial
held by a Metropolitan Magistrate is called for by the High Court or
Court of Session under section 397, the Magistrate may submit with the
record a statement setting forth the grounds of his decision or order
and any facts which he thinks material to the issue; and the Court shall
consider such statement before overruling or setting aside the said
decision or order.
CrPC Section 405. High Courts’ order to be certified to lower Court. When a
case is revised under this Chapter by the High Court or a Sessions
Judge, it or he shall, in the manner provided by section 388, certify
its decision or order to the Court by which the finding, sentence or
order revised was recorded or passed, and the Court to which the
decision or order is so certified shall thereupon make such orders as
are conformable to the decision so certified; and, if necessary, the
record shall be amended in accordance therewith. CHAP TRANSFER OF
CRIMINAL CASES. CHAPTER XXXI TRANSFER OF CRIMINAL CASES
CrPC Section 406. Power of Supreme Court to transfer cases and appeals.
(1) Whenever it is made to appear to the Supreme Court that an order
under this section is expedient for the ends of justice, it may direct
that any particular case or appeal be transferred from one High Court
to another High Court or from a Criminal Court subordinate to one High
Court to another Criminal Court of equal or superior jurisdiction
subordinate to another High Court.
(2) The Supreme Court may act under this section only on the
application of the Attorney- General of India or of a party
interested, and every such application shall be made by motion, which
shall, except when the applicant is the Attorney- General of India or
the Advocate- General of the State, be supported by affidavit or
affirmation.
(3) Where any application for the exercise of the powers conferred by
this section is dismissed, the Supreme Court may, if it is of opinion
that the application was frivolous or vexatious, order the applicant
to pay by way of compensation to any person who has opposed the
application such sum not exceeding one thousand rupees as it may
consider appropriate In the circumstances of the case.
CrPC Section 407. Power of High Court to transfer cases and appeals.
(1) Whenever it is made to appear to the High Court-
(a) that a fair and impartial inquiry or trial cannot be had in any
Criminal Court subordinate thereto, or
(b) that some question of law of unusual difficulty is likely to
arise, or
(c) that an order under this section is required by any provision of
this Code, or will tend to the general convenience of the parties or
witnesses, or is expedient for the ends of justice,
it may order-
(i) that any offence be inquired into or tried by any Court not
qualified under sections 177 to 185 (both inclusive), but in other
respects competent to inquire into or try such offence;
(ii) that any particular case or appeal, or class of cases or
appeals, be transferred from a Criminal Court subordinate to its
authority to any other such Criminal Court of equal or superior
jurisdiction;
(iii) that any particular case be committed for trial to a Court
of Session; or
(iv) that any particular case or appeal be transferred to and
tried before itself.
(2) The High Court may act either on the report of the lower Court, or
on the application of a party interested, or on its own initiative:
Provided that no application shall lie to the High Court for
transferring a case from one Criminal Court to another Criminal Court
in the same sessions division, unless an application for such transfer
has been made to the Sessions Judge and rejected by him.
(3) Every application for an order under sub- section (1) shall be
made by motion, which shall, except when the applicant is the
Advocate- General of the State, be supported by affidavit or
affirmation.
(4) When such application is made by an accused person, the High Court
may direct him to execute a bond, with or without sureties, for the
payment of any compensation which the High Court may award under sub-
section (7).
(5) Every accused person making such application shall give to the
Public Prosecutor notice in writing of the application, together with
copy of the grounds on which it is made; and no order shall be made on
of the merits of the application unless at least twenty- four hours
have elapsed between the giving of such notice and the hearing of the
application.
(6) Where the application is for the transfer of a case or appeal from
any subordinate Court, the High Court may, if it is satisfied that it
is necessary so to do in the interests of justice, order that, pending
the disposal of the application, the proceedings in the subordinate
Court shall be stayed, on such terms as the High Court may think fit
to impose: Provided that such stay shall not affect the subordinate
Court’ s power of remand under section 309.
(7) Where an application for an order under sub- section (1) is
dismissed, the High Court may, if it is of opinion that the
application was frivolous or vexatious, order the applicant to pay by
way of compensation to any person who has opposed the application such
sum not exceeding one thousand rupees as it may consider proper in the
circumstances of the case.
(8) When the High Court orders under sub- section (1) that a case be
transferred from any Court for trial before itself, it shall observe
in such trial the same procedure which that Court would have observed
if the case had not been so transferred.
(9) Nothing in this section shall be deemed to affect any order of
Government under section 197.
CrPC Section 408. Power of Sessions Judge to transfer cases and appeals.
(1) Whenever it is made to appear to a Sessions Judge that an order
under this sub- section is expedient for the ends of justice, he may
order that any particular case be transferred from one Criminal Court
to another Criminal Court in his sessions division.
(2) The Sessions Judge may act either on the report of the lower
Court, or on the application of a party interested, or on his own
initiative.
(3) The provisions of sub- sections (3), (4), (5), (6), (7) and (9) of
section 407 shall apply in relation to an application to the Sessions
Judge for an order under sub- section (1) as they apply in relation to
an application to the High Court for an order under subsection (1) of
section 407, except that sub- section (7) of that section shall so
apply as if for the words” one thousand rupees” occurring therein, the
words” two hundred and fifty rupees” were substituted.
CrPC Section 409. Withdrawal of cases and appeals by Sessions Judges.
(1) A Sessions Judge may withdraw any case or appeal from, or recall
any case or appeal which he has made over to, any Assistant Sessions
Judge or Chief Judicial Magistrate subordinate to him.
(2) At any time before the trial of the case or the hearing of the
appeal has commenced before the Additional Sessions Judge, a Sessions
Judge may recall any case or appeal which he has made over to any
Additional Sessions Judge.
(3) Where a Sessions Judge withdraws or recalls a case or appeal under
sub- section (1) or sub- section (2), he may either try the case in
his own Court or hear the appeal himself, or make it over in
accordance with the provisions of this Code to another Court for trial
or hearing, as the case may be.
CrPC Section 410. Withdrawal of cases by Judicial Magistrates.
(1) Any Chief Judicial Magistrate may withdraw any case from, or
recall any case which he has made over to, any Magistrate subordinate
to him, and may inquire into or try such case himself, or refer it for
inquiry or trial to any other such Magistrate competent to inquire
into or try the same.
(2) Any Judicial Magistrate may recall any case made over by him under
sub- section (2) of section 192 to any other Magistrate and may
inquire into or try such case himself.
CrPC Section 411. Making over or withdrawal of cases by Excutive Magistrates.
Any District Magistrate or Sub- divisional Magistrate may-
(a) make over, for disposal, any proceeding which has been started
before him, to any Magistrate subordinate to him;
(b) withdraw any case from, or recall any case which he has made over
to, any Magistrate subordinate to him, and dispose of such proceeding
himself or refer it for disposal to any other Magistrate.
CrPC Section 412. Reasons to be recorded. A Sessions Judge or Magistrate
making an order under section 408, section 409, section 410 or section
411 shall record his reasons for making it. CHAP EXECUTION, SUSPENSION,
REMISSION AND COMMUTATION OF SENTENCES CHAPTER XXXII EXECUTION,
SUSPENSION, REMISSION AND COMMUTATION OF SENTENCES A.- Death sentences
CrPC Section 413. Execution of order passed under section 368. When in a case
submitted to the High Court for the confirmation of a sentence of death,
the Court of Session receives the order of confirmation or other order
of the High Court thereon, it shall cause such order to be carried into
effect by issuing a warrant or taking such other steps as may be
necessary.
CrPC Section 414. Execution of sentence of death passed by High Court. When a
sentence of death is passed by the High Court in appeal or in revision,
the Court of Session shall, on receiving the order of the High Court,
cause the sentence to be carried into effect by issuing a warrant.
CrPC Section 415. Postponement of execution sentence of death in case of
appeal to Supreme Court.
(1) Where a person is sentenced to death by the High Court and an
appeal from its judgment lies to the Supreme Court under subclause (a)
or sub- clause (b) of clause (1) of article 134 of the Constitution.
the High Court shall order the execution of the sentence to be
postponed until the period allowed for preferring such appeal has
expired, or, if an appeal is preferred within that period, until such
appeal is disposed of.
(2) Where a sentence of death is passed or confirmed by the High
Court, and the person sentenced makes an application to the High Court
for the grant of a certificate under article 132 or under sub- clause
(c) of clause (1) of article 134 of the Constitution, the High Court
shall order the execution of the sentence to be postponed until such
application is disposed of by the High Court, or if a certificate is
granted on such application, until the period allowed for preferring
an appeal to the Supreme Court on such certificate has expired.
(3) Where a sentence of death is passed or confirmed by the High
Court, and the High Court is satisfied that the person sentenced
intends to present a petition to the Supreme Court for the grant of
special leave to appeal under article 136 of the Constitution, the
High Court shall order the execution of the sentence to be postponed
for such period as it considers sufficient to enable him to present
such petition.
CrPC Section 416. Postponement of capital sentence pregnant woman. If a woman
sentenced to death is found to be pregnant, the High Court shall order
the execution of the sentence to be postponed, and may, if it thinks
fit, commute the sentence to imprisonment for life. B.- Imprisonment
CrPC Section 417. Power to appoint place of imprisonment.
(1) Except when otherwise provided by any law for the time being in
force, the State Government may direct In what place any person liable
to be imprisoned or committed to custody under this Code shall be
confined.
(2) If any person liable to be imprisoned or committed to custody
under this Code is in confinement in a civil jail, the Court or
Magistrate ordering the imprisonment or committal may direct that the
person be removed to a criminal jail.
(3) When a person is removed to a criminal jail under sub- section
(2), he shall, on being released therefrom, be sent back to the civil
jail, unless either-
(a) three years have elapsed since he was removed to the criminal
jail, in Which case he shall be deemed to have been released from
the civil jail under section 58 of the Code of Civil Pro-
cedure, 1908 (5 of 1908 ), or section 23 of the Provincial
Insolvency Act, 1920 (5 of 1920 ), as the case may be; or
(b) the Court which ordered his imprisonment in the civil jail has
certified to the officer in charge of the criminal jail that he is
entitled to be released under section 58 of the Code of Civil
Procedure, 1908 (5 of 1908 ), or under section 23 of the Provincial
Insolvency Act, 1920 (5 of 1920 ), as the case may be.
CrPC Section 418. Execution of sentence of imprisonment.
(1) Where the accused is sentenced to imprisonment for life or to
imprisonment for a term in cases other than those provided for by
section 413, the Court passing the sentence shall forthwith forward a
warrant to the jail or other place in which he is, or is to be,
confined, and, unless the accused is already confined in such jail or
other place, shall forward him to such jail or other place, with the
warrant: Provided that where the accused is sentenced to imprisonment
till the rising of the Court, it shall not be necessary to prepare or
forward a warrant to a jail, and the accused may be confined in such
place as the Court may direct.
(2) Where the accused is not present in Court when he is sentenced to
such imprisonment as is mentioned in sub- section (1), the Court shall
issue a warrant for his arrest for the purpose of forwarding him to
the jail or other place in which he is to be confined; and in such
case, the sentence shall commence on the date of his arrest.
CrPC Section 419. Direction of warrant for execution. Every warrant for the
execution of a sentence of imprisonment shall be directed to the officer
in charge of the jail or other place in which the prisoner is, or is to
be, confined.
CrPC Section 420. Warrant with whom to be lodged. When the prisoner is to be
confined in a jail, the warrant shall be lodged with the jailor. C.-
Levy of fine
CrPC Section 421. Warrant for levy of fine.
(1) When an offender has been sentenced to pay a fine, the Court
passing the sentence may take action for the recovery of the fine in
either or both of the following ways, that is to say, it may-
(a) issue a warrant for the levy of the amount by attachment and
sale of any movable property belonging to the offender;
(b) issue a warrant to the Collector of the district, authorising
him to realise the amount as arrears of land revenue from the
movable or immovable property, or both, of the defaulter: Provided
that, if the sentence directs that in default of payment of the
fine, the offender shall be imprisoned, and if such offender has
undergone the whole of such imprisonment in default, no Court shall
issue such warrant unless, for special reasons to be recorded in
writing, it considers it necessary so to do, or unless it has made
an order for the payment of expenses or compensation out of the fine
under section 357.
(2) The State Government may make rules regulating the manner In which
warrants under clause (a) of sub- section (1) are to be executed, and
for the summary determination of any claims made by any person other
than the offender in respect of any property attached in execution of
such warrant.
(3) Where the Court issues a warrant to the Collector under clause (b)
of sub- section (1), the Collector shall realise the amount in
accordance with the law relating to recovery of arrears of land
revenue, as if such warrant were a certificate issued under such law:
Provided that no such warrant shall be executed by the arrest or
detention in prison of the offender.
CrPC Section 422. Effect of such warrant. A warrant issued under clause (a)
of sub- section
(1) of section 421 by any Court may be executed within the local
jurisdiction of such Court, and it shall authorise the attachment and
sale of any such property outside such jurisdiction, when it is
endorsed by the District Magistrate within whose local jurisdiction
such property is found.
CrPC Section 423. Warrant for levy of fine issued by a Court in any territory
to which this Code does not extend. Notwithstanding anything contained
in this Code or in any other law for the time being in force, when an
offender has been sentenced to pay a fine by a Criminal Court in any
territory to which this Code does not extend and the Court passing the
sentence issues a warrant to the Collector of a district in the
territories to which this Code extends, authorising him to realise the
amount as if it were an arrear of land revenue, such warrant shall be
deemed to be a warrant issued under clause (b) of sub- section 1 of
section 421 by a Court in the territories to which this Code extends,
and the provisions of sub- section (3) of the said section, as to the
execution of such warrant shall apply accordingly.
CrPC Section 424. Suspension of execution of sentence of imprisonment.
(1) When an offender has been sentenced to fine only and to
imprisonment in default of payment of the fine, and the fine is not
paid forthwith, the Court may-
(a) order that the fine shall be payable either in full on or before
a date not more than thirty days from the date of the order, or in
two or three instalments, of which the first shall be payable on or
before a date not more than thirty days from the date of the order
and the other or others at an interval or at intervals, as the case
may be, of not more than thirty days;
(b) suspend the execution of the sentence of imprisonment and
release the offender, on the execution by the offender of a bond,
with or without sureties, as the Court thinks fit, conditioned for
his appearance before the Court on the date or dates on or before
which payment of the fine or the instalments thereof, as the case
may be, is to be made; and if the amount of the fine or of any
instalment, as the case may be, is not realised on or before the
latest date on which it is payable under the order, the Court may
direct the sentence of imprisonment to be carried into execution at
once.
(2) The provisions of sub- section (1) shall be applicable also in any
case in which an order for the payment of money has been made on non-
recovery of which imprisonment may be awarded and the money is not
paid forthwith; and, if the person against whom the order has been
made, on being required to enter into a bond such as is referred to in
that sub- section, fails to do so, the Court may at once pass sentence
of imprisonment. D.- General provisions regarding execution
CrPC Section 425. Who may issue warrant. Every warrant for the execution of a
sentence may be issued either by the Judge or Magistrate who passed the
sentence, or by his successor- in- office.
CrPC Section 426. Sentence on escaped convict when to take effect.
(1) When a sentence of death, imprisonment for life or fine is passed
under this Code on an escaped convict, such sentence shall, subject to
the provisions hereinbefore contained, take effect immediately.
(2) When a sentence of imprisonment for a term is passed under this
Code on an escaped convict,-
(a) if such sentence is severer in kind than the sentence which such
convict was undergoing when he escaped, the new sentence shall take
effect immediately;
(b) if such sentence is not severer in kind than the sentence which
such convict was undergoing when he escaped, the new sentence shall
take effect after he has suffered imprisonment for a further period
equal to that which, at the time of his escape, remained unexpired
of his former sentence.
(3) For the purposes of sub- section (2), a sentence of rigorous
imprisonment shall be deemed to be severer in kind than a sentence of
simple imprisonment.
Sentence on offender already sentenced for another offence.
CrPC Section 427. Sentence on offender already sentenced for another offence.
(1) When a person already undergoing a sentence of imprisonment is
sentenced on a subsequent conviction to imprisonment or imprisonment
for life, such imprisonment or imprisonment for life shall commence at
the expiration of the imprisonment to which he has been previously
sentenced, unless the Court directs that the subsequent sentence shall
run concurrently with such previous sentence: Provided that where a
person who has been sentenced to imprison- ment by an order under
section 122 in default of furnishing security is, whilst undergoing
such sentence, sentenced to imprisonment for an offence committed
prior to the making of such order, the latter sentence shall commence
immediately.
(2) When a person already undergoing a sentence of imprisonment for
life is sentenced on a subsequent conviction to imprisonment for a
term or imprisonment for life, the subsequent sentence shall run con-
currently with such previous sentence.
CrPC Section 428. Period of detention undergone by the accused to be set off
against the sentence or imprisonment. Where an accused person has, on
conviction, been sentenced to imprisonment for a term 1 , not
being imprisonment in default of payment of fine], the period of
detention, if any, undergone by him during the investigation, inquiry or
trial of the same case and before the date of such conviction, shall be
set off against the term of imprisonment imposed on him on such
conviction, and the liability of such person to undergo
1. Ins. by Act 45 of 1978, s. 31 (w. e. f. 18- 12- 1978 ).
CrPC Section 429. Saving.
(1) Nothing in section 426 or section 427 shall be held to excuse
person from any part of the punishment to which he is liable upon his
former or subsequent conviction.
(2) When an award of imprisonment in default of payment of a fine is
annexed to a substantive sentence of imprisonment and the person
undergoing the sentence is after its execution to undergo a further
substantive sentence or further substantive sentences of imprisonment,
effect shall not be given to the award of imprisonment in default of
payment of the fine until the person has undergone the further
sentence or sentences.
CrPC Section 430. Return of warrant on execution sentence. When a sentence
has been fully executed, the officer executing it shall return the
warrant to the Court from which it is issued, with an endorsement under
his hand certifying the manner in which the sentence has been executed.
CrPC Section 431. Money ordered to be paid recoverable as fine. Any money
(other than a fine) payable by virtue of any order made under this Code,
and the method of recovery of which is not otherwise expressly provided
for, shall be recoverable as if it were a fine: Provided that section
421 shall, in its application to an order under section 359, by virtue
of this section, be construed as if in the proviso to sub- section (1)
of section 421, after the words and figures” under section 357″, the
words and figures” or an order for payment of costs under section 359″
had been inserted, E.- Suspension, remission and commutation of
sentences
CrPC Section 432. Power to suspend or remit sentences.
(1) When any person has been sentenced to punishment for an offence,
the appropriate Government may, at any time, without Conditions or
upon any conditions which the person sentenced accepts, suspend the
execution of his sentence or remit the whole or any part of the
punishment to which he has been sentenced.
(2) Whenever an application is made to the appropriate Government for
the suspension or remission of a sentence, the appropriate Government
may require the. presiding Judge of the Court before or by which the
con-
viction was had or confirmed, to state his opinion as to whether the
application should be granted or refused, together with his reasons
for such opinion and also to forward with the statement of such
opinion a certified copy of the record of the trial or of such record
thereof as exists.
(3) If any condition on which a sentence has been suspended or
remitted is, In the opinion of the appropriate Government, not
fulfilled, the appropriate Government may cancel the suspension or
remission, and thereupon the person in whose favour the sentence has
been suspended or remitted may, if at large, be arrested by any police
officer, without warrant and remanded to undergo the unexpired portion
of the sentence.
(4) The condition on which a sentence is suspended or remitted under
this section may be one to be fulfilled by the person in whose favour
the sentence is suspended or remitted, or one independent of his will.
(5) The appropriate Government may, by general rules or special orders
give directions as to the suspension of sentences and the conditions
on which petitions should be presented and dealt with: Provided that
in the case of any sentence (other than a sentence of fine) passed on
a male person above the age of eighteen years, no such petition by the
person sentenced or by any other person on his behalf shall be
entertained, unless the person sentenced is in jail, and-
(a) where such petition is made by the person sentenced, it is
presented through the officer in charge of the jail; or
(b) where such petition is made by any other person, it contains a
declaration that the person sentenced is in jail.
(6) The provisions of the above sub- sections shall also apply to any
order passed by a Criminal Court under any section of this Code or of
any other law which restricts the liberty of any person or imposes any
liability upon him or his property.
(7) In this section and in section 433, the expression” appropriate
Government” means,-
(a) in cases where the sentence is for an offence against, or the
order referred to in sub- section (6) is passed under, any law
relating to a matter to which the executive power of the Union
extends, the Central Government;
(b) in other cases, the Government of the State within which the
offender is sentenced or the said order is passed.
CrPC Section 433. Power to commute sentence. The appropriate Government may,
without the consent of the person sentenced, commute-
(a) a sentence of death, for any other punishment provided by the
Indian Penal Code;
(b) a sentence of imprisonment for life, for imprisonment for a term
not exceeding fourteen years or for fine;
(c) a sentence of rigorous imprisonment, for simple imprisonment for
any term to which that person might have been sentenced, or for fine;
(d) a sentence of simple imprisonment, for fine.
Restriction on powers of remission or Commutation in certain cases.
CrPC Section 433A. 1 Restriction on powers of remission or
Commutation in certain cases. Notwithstanding anything contained in
section 432, where a sentence of imprisonment for life is imposed on
conviction of a person for an offence for which death is one of the
punishments provided by law, or where a sentence of death imposed on a
person has been commuted under section 433 into one of imprisonment for
life, such person shall not be released from prison unless he had served
at least fourteen years of imprisonment.]
CrPC Section 434. Concurrent power of Central Government in case of death
sentences. The powers conferred by sections 432 and 433 upon the State
Government may, in the case of sentences of death, also be exercised by
the Central Government.
CrPC Section 435. State Government to act after consultation with Central
Government in certain cases.
(1) The powers conferred by sections 432 and 433 upon the State
Government to remit or commute a sentence, in any case where the
sentence Is for an offence-
(a) which was investigated by the Delhi Special Police Establishment
constituted under the Delhi Special Police Establishment Act, 1946
(25 of 1946 ), or by any other agency empowered to make
investigation into an offence under any Central Act other than this
Code, or
(b) which involved the misappropriation or destruction of, or damage
to, any property belonging to the Central Govern- ment, or
1. Ins. by Act 45 of 1978, s. 32 (w. e. f. 18- 12- 1978 ).
(c) which was committed by a person in the service of the Central
Government while acting or purporting to act in the discharge of his
official duty, shall not be exercised by the State Government except
after consultation with the Central Government.
(2) No order of suspension, remission or commutation of sentences
passed by the State Government in relation to a person, who has been
convicted of offences, some of which relate to matters to which the
executive power of the Union extends, and who has been sentenced to
separate terms of imprisonment which are to run concurrently, shall
have effect unless an order for the suspension, remission or
commutation, as the case may be, of such sentences has also been made
by the Central Government in relation to the offences committed by
such person with regard to matters to which the executive power of the
Union extends. CHAP PROVISIONS AS TO BAIL AND BONDS. CHAPTER XXXIII
PROVISIONS AS TO BAIL AND BONDS
CrPC Section 436. In what cases bail to be taken.
(1) When any person other than a person accused of a non- bailable
offence is arrested or detained without warrant by an officer in
charge of a police station, or appears or is brought before a Court,
and is prepared at any time while in the custody of such officer or at
any stage of the proceeding before such Court to give bail, such
person shall be released on bail: Provided that such officer or Court,
if he or it thinks fit, may, instead of taking bail from such person,
discharge him on his executing a bond without sureties for his
appearance as hereinafter provided: Provided further that nothing in
this section shall be deemed to affect the provisions of sub- section
(3) of section 116 or section 446A 1
.
(2) Notwithstanding anything contained in sub- section (1), where a
person has failed to comply with the conditions of the bail- bond as
regards the time and place of attendance, the Court may refuse to
release him on bail, when on a subsequent occasion in the same case he
appears before the Court or is brought in custody and any such refusal
shall be without prejudice to the powers of the Court to call upon any
person bound by such bond to pay the penalty thereof under section
446.
1. Ins. by Act 63 of 1980, s. 4 (w. e. f. 23. 9. 1980 )
CrPC Section 437. When bail may be taken in case of non- bailable
offence. 1
(1) When any person accused of, or suspected of, the commission of any
non- bailable offence is arrested or detained without warrant by an
officer in charge of a police station or appears or is brought before
a Court other than the High Court or Court of Session, he may be
released on bail, but-
(i) such person shall not be so released if there appear reasonable
grounds for believing that he has been guilty of an offence
punishable with death or imprisonment for life;
(ii) such person shall not be so released if such offence is a
cognizable offence and he had been previously convicted of an
offence punishable with death, imprisonment for life or imprisonment
for seven years or more, or he had been previously convicted on two
or more occasions of a non- bailable and cognizable offence:
Provided that the Court may direct that a person referred to in
clause (i) or clause (ii) be released on bail it such person is
under the age of sixteen years or is a woman or is sick or infirm:
Provided further that the Court may also direct that a person
referred to in clause (ii) be released on bail if it is satisfied
that It is just and proper so to do for any other special reason:
Provided also that the mere fact that an accused person may be
required for being identified by witnesses during investigation
shall not be sufficient ground for refusing to grant bail if he is
otherwise entitled to be released on bail and gives an undertaking
that he shall comply with such directions as may be given by the
Court.]
(2) If it appears to such officer or Court at any stage of the
investigation, inquiry or trial, as the case may be, that there are
not reasonable grounds for believing that the accused has committed a
non- bailable offence, but that there are sufficient grounds for
further inquiry into his 1 guilt the accused shall, subject
to the provisions of section 446A and pending such inquiry, be
released on bail] or at the discretion of such officer or Court, on
the execution by him of a bond without sureties for his appearance as
hereinafter provided.
(3) When a person accused or suspected of the commission of an offence
punishable with imprisonment which may extend to seven years or more
or of an offence under Chapter VI, Chapter XVI or Chapter XVII of the
Indian Penal Code or abetment of, or conspiracy or attempt to commit,
any such offence, is released on bail under sub- section (1), the
Court may impose any condition which the Court considers necessary-
(a) in order to ensure that such person shall attend in accordance
with the conditions of the bond executed under this Chapter, or
(b) in order to ensure that such person shall not commit an offence
similar to the offence of which he is accused or of the commission
of which he is suspected, or
(c) otherwise in the interests of justice.
(4) An officer or a Court releasing any person on bail under sub-
section (1) or sub- section (2), shall record in writing his or
its 1 reasons or special seasons] for so doing.
1. Subs. by Act 63 of 1980, s. 5 (w. e. f. 23. 9. 1980 ).
(5) Any Court which has released a person on bail under sub- section
(1) or sub- section (2), may, if it considers it necessary so to do,
direct that such person be arrested and commit him to custody.
(6) If, in any case triable by a Magistrate, the trial of a person
accused of any non- bailable offence is not concluded within a period
of sixty days from the first date fixed for taking evidence in the
case, such person shall, if he is in custody during the whole of the
said period, be released on bail to the satisfaction of the
Magistrate, unless for reasons to be recorded in writing, the
Magistrate otherwise directs.
(7) If, at any time after the conclusion of the trial of a person
accused of a non- bailable offence and before judgment is delivered,
the Court is of opinion that there are reasonable grounds for
believing that the accused is not guilty of any such offence, it shall
release the accused, if he is in custody, on the execution by him of a
bond without sureties for his appearance to hear judgment delivered.
CrPC Section 438. Direction for grant of bail to person apprehending arrest.
(1) When any person has reason to believe that he may be arrested on
an accusation of having committed a non- bailable offence, he may
apply to the High Court or the Court of Session for a direction under
this section; and that Court may, if it thinks fit, direct that in the
event of such arrest, he shall be released on bail.
(2) When the High Court or the Court of Session makes a direction
under sub- section (1), it may include such conditions in such
directions in the light of the facts of the particular case, as it may
think fit, including-
(i) a condition that the person shall make himself available for
interrogation by a police officer as and when required;
(ii) a condition that the person shall not, directly or indirectly,
make any inducement, threat or promise to any person acquainted with
the facts of the case so as to dissuade him from disclosing such
facts to the Court or to any police officer;
(iii) a condition that the person shall not leave India without the
previous permission of the Court;
(iv) such other condition as may be imposed under sub- section (3)
of section 437, as if the bail were granted under that section.
(3) If such person is thereafter arrested without warrant by an
officer in charge of a police station on such accusation, and is
prepared either at the time of arrest or at any time while in the
custody of such officer to give bail, be shall be released on bail;
and if a Magistrate taking cogniz-
ance of such offence decides that a warrant should issue in the first
instance against that person, he shall issue a bailable warrant in
conformity with the direction of the Court under sub- section (1).
CrPC Section 439. Special powers of High Court or Court of Session regarding
bail.
(1) A High Court or Court of Session may direct-
(a) that any person accused of an offence and in custody be released
on bail, and if the offence is of the nature specified in subsection
(3) of section 437, may impose any condition which it considers
necessary for the purposes mentioned in that sub- section;
(b) that any condition imposed by a Magistrate when releasing an
person on bail be set aside or modified: Provided that the High
Court or the Court of Session shall, before granting bail to a
person who is accused of an offence which is triable exclusively by
the Court of Session or which, though not so triable, is punishable
with imprisonment for life, give notice of the application for bail
to the Public Prosecutor unless it is, for reasons to be recorded in
writing, of opinion that it is not practicable to give such notice.
(2) A High Court or Court of Session may direct that any person who
has been released on bail under this Chapter be arrested and commit
him to custody.
CrPC Section 440. Amount of bond and reduction thereof.
(1) The amount of every bond executed under this Chapter shall be
fixed with due regard to the circumstances of the case and shall not
be excessive.
(2) The High Court or Court of Session may direct that the bail
required by a police officer or Magistrate be reduced.
CrPC Section 441. Bond of accused and sureties.
(1) Before any person is released on bail or released on his own bond,
a bond for such sum of money as the police officer or Court, as the
case may be, thinks sufficient shall be executed by such person, and,
when he is released on bail, by one or more sufficient sureties
conditioned that such person shall attend at the time and place
mentioned in the bond, and shall continue so to attend until otherwise
directed by the police officer or Court, as the case may be.
(2) Where any condition, is imposed for the release of any person on
bail, the bond shall also contain that condition.
(3) If the case so requires, the bond shall also bind the person
released on bail to appear when called upon at the High Court, Court
of Session or other Court to answer the charge.
(4) For the purpose of determining whether the sureties are fit or
sufficient, the Court may accept affidavits in proof of the facts
contained therein relating to the sufficiency or fitness of the
sureties, or, if it considers necessary, may either, hold an inquiry
itself or cause an inquiry to be made by a Magistrate subordinate to
the Court, as to such sufficiency or fitness.
CrPC Section 442. Discharge from custody.
(1) As soon as the bond has been executed, the person for whose
appearance it has been executed shall be released; and, when he is in
jail, the Court admitting him to bail shall issue an order of release
to the officer in charge of the jail, and such officer on receipt of
the orders shall release him.
(2) Nothing in this section, section 436 or section 437 shall be
deemed to require the release of any person liable to be detained for
some matter other than that in respect of which the bond was executed.
CrPC Section 443. Power to order sufficient bail when that first taken is
insufficient. If, through mistake, fraud, or otherwise, insufficient
sureties have been accepted, or if they afterwards become insufficient,
the Court may issue a warrant of arrest directing that the person
released on bail be brought before it and may order him to find
sufficient sureties, and, on his failing so to do, may commit him to
jail.
CrPC Section 444. Discharge of sureties.
(1) All or any sureties for the attendance and appearance of a person
released on bail may at any time apply to a Magistrate to discharge
the bond, either wholly or so far as relates to the applicants.
(2) On such application being made, the Magistrate shall issue his
warrant of arrest directing that the person so released be brought
before him.
(3) On the appearance of such person pursuant to the warrant, or on
his voluntary surrender, the Magistrate shall direct the bond to be
discharged either wholly or so far as relates to the applicants, and
shall call upon such person to find other sufficient sureties, and, if
he fails to do so, may commit him to jail.
CrPC Section 445. Deposit instead of recognizance. When any person is
required by any Court or officer to execute a bond with or without
sureties, such Court or officer may, except in the case of a bond for
good behaviour, permit him to deposit a sum of money
or Government promissory notes to such amount as the Court or officer
may fix in lieu of executing such bond.
CrPC Section 446. Procedure when bond has been forfeited.
(1) Where a bond under this Code is for appearance, or for production
of property, before a Court and it is proved to the satisfaction of
that Court, or of any Court to which the case has subsequently been
transferred, that the bond has been forfeited, or where, in respect of
any other bond under this Code, it is proved to the satisfaction of
the Court by which the bond was taken, or of any Court to which the
case has subsequently been transferred, or of the Court of any
Magistrate of the first class, that the bond has been forfeited, the
Court shall record the grounds of such proof, and may call upon any
person bound by such bond to pay the penalty thereof or to show cause
why it should not be paid. Explanation.- A condition in a bond for
appearance, or for production of property, before a Court shall be
construed as including a condition for appearance, or as the case may
be, for production of property, before any Court to which the case may
subsequently be transferred.
(2) If sufficient cause is not shown and the penalty is not paid, the
Court may proceed to recover the same as if such penalty were a fine
imposed by it under this Code. 1
provided that where such penalty is not paid and cannot be recovered
in the manner aforesaid, the person so bound as surety shall be
liable, by order of the Court ordering the recovery of the penalty, to
imprisonment in civil jail for a term which may extend to six months.]
(3) The Court may, at its discretion, remit any portion of the penalty
mentioned and enforce payment in part only.
(4) Where a surety to a bond dies before the bond is forfeited, his
estate shall be discharged from all liability in respect of the bond.
(5) Where any person who has furnished security under section 106 or
section 117 or section 360 is convicted of an offence the commission
of which constitutes a breach of the conditions of his bond, or of a
bond executed in lieu of his bond under section 448, a certified copy
of the judgment of the Court by which he was convicted of such offence
may be used as evidence in proceedings under this section against his
surety or sureties, and,; if such certified copy is so used, the Court
shall presume that such offence was committed by him unless the
contrary is proved.
CrPC Section 446A. 2 Cancellation of bond and bail- bond. Without
prejudice to the provisions of section 446, where a bond under this Code
is for appearance of a person in a case and it is forfeited for breach
of a condition-
(a) the bond executed by such person as well as the bond, if any,
executed by one or more of his sureties in that case shall stand
cancelled; and
(b) thereafter no such person shall be released only on his own bond
in that case, if the Police Officer or the Court, as the case may be,
for appearance before whom the bond was executed, is satisfied that
there was no sufficient cause for the failure of the person bound by
the bond to comply with its condition: Provided that subject to any
other provision of this Code he may be released in that case upon the
execution of a fresh personal bond for such sum of money and bond by
one or more of such sureties as the Police Officer or the Court, as
the case may be, thinks sufficient.]
CrPC Section 447. Procedure in case of insolvency or death of surety or when
a bond is forfeited. When any surety to a bond under this Code becomes
insolvent or dies, or when any bond is forfeited under the provisions of
section 446, the Court by whose order such bond was taken, or a
Magistrate of the first class may order the person from whom such
security was demanded to furnish fresh security in accordance with the
directions of the original
1. Added by Act 63 of 1980, s. 6 (w. e. f. 23- 09- 1980 ).
2. Ins. by s. 7, ibid. (w. e. f. (23 – 09- 1980 ).
CrPC Section 448. Bond required from minor. When the person required by any
Court, or officer to execute a bond is a minor, such Court or offer may
accept, in lieu thereof, a bond executed by a surety or sureties only.
CrPC Section 449. Appeal from orders under section 446. All orders passed
under section 446 shall be appealable,-
(i) in the case of an order made by a Magistrate, to the Sessions
Judge;
(ii) in the case of an order made by a Court of Session, to the Court
to which an appeal lies from an order made by such Court.
CrPC Section 450. Power to direct levy of amount due on certain
recognizances. The High Court or Court of Session may direct any
Magistrate to levy the amount due on a bond for appearance or attendance
at such High Court or Court of Session. CHAP DISPOSAL OF PROPERTY.
CHAPTER XXXIV DISPOSAL OF PROPERTY
CrPC Section 451. Order for custody and disposal of property pending trial in
certain cases. When any property is produced before any Criminal Court
during any inquiry or trial, the Court may make such order as it thinks
fit for the proper custody of such property pending the conclusion of
the inquiry or trial, and, if the property is subject to speedy and
natural decay, or if it is otherwise expedient so to do, the Court may,
after recording such evidence as it thinks necessary, order it to be
sold or otherwise disposed of. Explanation.- For the purposes of this
section,” property” includes-
(a) property of any kind or document which is produced before the
Court or which is in its custody,
(b) any property regarding which an offence appears to have been
committed or which appears to have been used for the commission of any
offence.
CrPC Section 452. Order for disposal of property at conclusion of trial.
(1) When an inquiry or trial in any Criminal Court is concluded, the
Court may make such order as it thinks fit for the disposal, by
destruction, confiscation or delivery to any person claiming to be
entitle to possession thereof or otherwise, of any property or
document produced before it or in its custody, or regarding which any
offence appears to have been committed, or which has been used for the
commission of any offence.
(2) An order may be made under sub- section (1) for the delivery of
any property to any person claiming to be entitled to the possession
thereof, without any condition or on condition that he executes a
bond, with or without sureties, to the satisfaction of the Court,
engaging to restore such property to the Court if the order made under
sub- section (1) is modified or set aside on appeal or revision.
(3) A Court of Session may, instead of itself making an order under
sub- section (1), direct the property to be delivered to the Chief
Judicial Magistrate, who shall thereupon deal with it in the manner
provided in sections 457, 458 and 459.
(4) Except where the property is livestock or is subject to speedy and
natural decay, or where a bond has been executed in pursuance of
subsection (2), an order made under sub- section (1) shall not be
carried out for two months, or when an appeal is presented, until such
appeal has been disposed of.
(5) In this section, the term” property” includes, in the case of
property regarding which an offence appears to have been committed,
not only such property as has been originally in the possession or
under the control of any party, but also any property into or for
which the same may have been converted or exchanged, and anything
acquired by such conversion or exchange, whether immediately or
otherwise.
CrPC Section 453. Payment to innocent purchaser of money found on accused.
When any person is convicted of any offence which includes, or amounts
to, theft or receiving stolen property, and it is proved that any other
person bought the stolen property from him without knowing or having
reason to believe that the same was stolen, and that any money has on
his arrest been taken out of the possession of the convicted person, the
Court may, on the application of such purchaser and on the restitution
of the stolen property to the person entitled to the possession thereof,
order that out of such money a sum not exceeding the price paid by such
purchaser be delivered to him.
CrPC Section 454. Appeal against orders section 452 or section 453.
(1) Any person aggrieved by an order made by a Court under section 452
or section 453, may appeal against it to the Court to which appeals
ordinarily lie from convictions by the former Court.
(2) On such appeal, the Appellate Court may direct the order to be
stayed pending disposal of the appeal, or may modify, alter or annul
the order and make any further orders that may be just.
(3) The powers referred to in sub- section (2) may also be exercised
by a Court of appeal, confirmation or revision while dealing with the
case in which the order referred to in sub- section (1) was made.
CrPC Section 455. Destruction of libellous and other matter.
(1) On a conviction under section 292, section 293, section 501 or
section 502 of the Indian Penal Code (45 of 1860 ), the Court may
order the destruction of all the copies of the thing in respect of
which the conviction was had, and which are in the custody of the
Court or remain in the possession or power of the person convicted.
(2) The Court may, in like manner, on a conviction under section 272,
section 273, section 274 or section 275 of the Indian Penal Code (45
of 1860 ), order the food, drink, drug or medical preparation in
respect of which the conviction was had, to be destroyed.
CrPC Section 456. Power to restore possession of immovable property.
(1) When a person is convicted of an offence attended by criminal
force or show of force or by criminal intimidation, and it appears to
the Court that, by such force or show of force or intimidation, any
person has been dispossessed of any immovable property, the Court may,
if it thinks fit, order that possession of the same be restored to
that person after evicting by force, if necessary, any other person
who may be in possession of the property: Provided that no such order
shall be made by the Court more than one month after the date of the
conviction.
(2) Where the Court trying the offence has not made an order under
sub- section (1), the Court of appeal, confirmation or revision may,
if it thinks fit, make such order while disposing of the appeal,
reference or revision, as the case may be.
(3) Where an order has been made under sub- section (1), the pro-
visions of section 454 shall apply in relation thereto as they apply
in relation to an order under section 453.
(4) No order made under this section shall prejudice any right or
interest to or in such immovable property which any person may be able
to establish in a civil suit.
CrPC Section 457. Procedure by police upon seizure of property.
(1) Whenever the seizure of property by any police officer is reported
to a Magistrate under the provisions of this Code, and such property
is not produced before a Criminal Court during an inquiry or trial,
the Magistrate may make such order as he thinks fit respecting the
disposal of such property or the delivery of such property to the
person entitled to the possession thereof, or if such person cannot be
ascertained, respecting the custody and production of such property.
(2) If the person so entitled is known, the Magistrate may order the
property to be delivered to him on such conditions (if any) as the
Magistrate thinks fit and if such person is unknown, the Magistrate
may detain it and shall, in such case, issue a proclamation specifying
the articles of which such property consists, and requiring any person
who may have a claim thereto, to appear before him and establish his
claim within six months from the date of such proclamation.
CrPC Section 458. Procedure where no claimant appears within six months.
(1) If no person within such period establishes his claim to such
property, and if the person in whose possession such property was
found is unable to show that it was legally acquired by him, the
Magistrate may by order direct that such property shall be at the
disposal of the State Government and may be sold by that Government
and the proceeds of such sale shall be dealt with in such manner as
may be prescribed.
(2) An appeal shall lie against any such order to the Court to which
appeals ordinarily lie from convictions by the Magistrate.
CrPC Section 459. Power to sell perishable property. If the person entitled
to the possession of such property is un- known or absent and the
property is subject to speedy and natural decay, or if the Magistrate to
whom its seizure is reported is of opinion that its sale would be for
the benefit of the owner, or that the value of such property is less
than ten rupees, the Magistrate may at any time direct it to be sold;
and the provisions of sections 457 and 458 shall, as nearly as may be
practicable, apply to the net proceeds of such sale. CHAP IRREGULAR
PROCEEDINGS. CHAPTER XXXV IRREGULAR PROCEEDINGS
CrPC Section 460. Irregularities which do not vitiate proceedings. If any
Magistrate not empowered by law to do any of the following things,
namely:-
(a) to issue a search- warrant under section 94;
(b) to order, under section 155, the police to investigate an offence;
(c) to hold an inquest under section 176;
(d) to issue process under section 187, for the apprehension of a
person within his local jurisdiction who has committed an offence
outside the limits of such jurisdiction;
(e) to take cognizance of an offence under clause (a) or clause (b) of
sub- section (1) of section 190;
(f) to make over a case under sub- section (2) of section 192; (g) to
tender a pardon under section 306;
(h) to recall a case and try it himself under section 410; or
(i) to sell property under section 458 or section 459, erroneously in
good faith does that thing, his proceedings shall not be set aside
merely on the ground of his not being so empowered.
CrPC Section 461. Irregularities which vitiate proceedings. If any
Magistrate, not being empowered by law in this behalf, does any of the
following things, namely:-
(a) attaches and sells property under section 83;
(b) issues a search- warrant for a document, parcel or other thing in
the custody of a postal or telegraph authority;
(c) demands security to keep the peace;
(d) demands security for good behaviour;
(e) discharges a person lawfully bound to be of good behaviour;
(f) cancels a bond to keep the peace;
(g) makes an order for maintenance;
(h) makes an order under section 133 as to a local nuisance;
(i) prohibits, under section 143, the repetition or continuance of a
public nuisance;
(j) makes an order under Part C or Part D of Chapter X;
(k) takes cognizance of an offence under clause (c) of sub- section
(1) of section 190
(l) tries an offender;
(m) tries an offender summarily;
(n) passes a sentence, under section 325, on proceedings recorded by
another Magistrate;
(o) decides an appeal;
(p) calls, under section 397, for proceedings; or
(q) revises an order passed under section 446, his proceedings shall
be void.
CrPC Section 462. Proceedings in wrong place. No finding, sentence or order
of any Criminal Court shall be set aside merely on the ground that the
inquiry, trial or other proceedings in the course of which it was
arrived at or passed, took place in a wrong sessions division, district,
sub- division or other local area, unless it appears that such error has
in fact occasioned a failure of justice.
CrPC Section 463. Non- compliance with provisions of section 164 or section
281.
(1) If any Court before which a confession or other statement of an
accused person recorded, or purporting to be recorded under section
164 or section 281, is tendered, or has been received, in evidence
finds that any of the provisions of either of such sections have not
been complied with by the Magistrate recording the statement, it may,
notwithstanding anything contained in section 91 of the Indian
Evidence Act, 1872 (1 of 1872 ), take evidence in regard to such non-
compliance, and may, if satisfied that such non- compliance has not
in- jured the accused in his defence on the merits and that he duly
made the statement recorded, admit such statement.
(2) The provisions of this section apply to Courts of appeal,
reference and revision.
CrPC Section 464. Effect of omission to frame, or absence of, or error in,
charge.
(1) No finding, sentence or order by a Court of competent jurisdiction
shall be deemed invalid merely on the ground that no charge was framed
or on the ground of any error, omission or irregularity in the charge
including any misjoinder of charges, unless, in the opinion of the
Court of appeal, confirmation or revision, a failure of justice has in
fact been occasioned thereby.
(2) If the Court of appeal, confirmation or revision is of opinion
that a failure of justice has in fact been occasioned, it may-
(a) in the case of an omission to frame a charge, order that a
charge be framed and that the trial be recommended from the point
immediately after the framing of the charge;
(b) in the case of an error, omission or irregularity in the charge,
direct a new trial to be had upon a charge framed in whatever manner
it thinks fit:
Provided that if the Court is of opinion that the facts of the case
are such that no valid charge could be preferred against the accused
in respect of the facts proved, it shall quash the conviction.
CrPC Section 465. Finding or sentence when reversible by reason of error,
omission irregularity.
(1) Subject to the provisions hereinbefore contained, no finding,
sentence or order passed by a Court of competent jurisdiction shall be
reversed or altered by a Court of appeal, confirmation or revision on
account of any error, omission or irregularity in the complaint,
summons, warrant, proclamation, order, judgment or other proceedings
before or during trial or in any inquiry or other proceedings under
this Code, or any error, or irregularity in any sanction for the
prosecution, unless in the opinion of that Court, a failure of justice
has in fact been occasioned thereby.
(2) In determining whether any error, omission or irregularity in any
proceeding under this Code, or any error, or irregularity in any
sanction for the prosecution has occasioned a failure of justice, the
Court shall have regard to the fact whether the objection could and
should have been raised at an earlier stage in the proceedings.
CrPC Section 466. Defect or error not to make attachment unlawful. No
attachment made under this Code shall be deemed unlawful, nor shall any
person making the same be deemed a trespasser, on account of any defect
or want of form in the summons, conviction, writ or attachment or other
proceedings relating thereto. CHAP LIMITATION FOR TAKING COGNIZANCE OF
CERTAIN OFFENCES. CHAPTER XXXVI 1 LIMITATION FOR TAKING COGNIZANCE OF
CERTAIN OFFENCES.
CrPC Section 467. Definitions. For the purposes of this Chapter, unless the
context otherwise requires,” period of limitation” means the period
specified in section 468 for taking cognizance of an offence.
CrPC Section 468. Bar to taking cognizance after lapse of the period of
limitation.
(1) Except as otherwise provided elsewhere in this Code, no Court
shall take cognizance of an offence of the category specified in sub-
section (2), after the expiry of the period of limitation.
(2) The period of limitation shall be-
(a) six months, if the offence is punishable with fine only
1. Provisions of this Chapter shall not apply to certain
economic offences, see the Economic Offences (Inapplicability of
Limitation) Act, 1974 (12 of 1974 ), s. 2 end Sch.
(b) one year, if the offence is punishable with imprisonment for a
term not exceeding one year;
(c) three years, if the offence is punishable with imprisonment for
term exceeding one year but not exceeding three years.
(3) 1 For the purposes of this section, the period of
limitation in relation to offences which may be tried together, shall
be determined with reference to the offence which is punishable with
the more severe punishment or, as the case may be, the most severe
punishment.]
CrPC Section 469. Commencement of the period of limitation.
(1) The period of limitation, in relation to an offender, shall
commence,-
(a) on the date of the offence; or
(b) where the commission of the offence was not known to the person
aggrieved by the offence or to any police officer, the first day on
which such offence comes to the knowledge of such person or to any
police officer, whichever is earlier; or
(c) where it is not known by whom the offence was committed, the
first day on which the identity of the offender is known to the
person aggrieved by the offence or to the police officer making
investigation into the offence, whichever is earlier.
(2) In computing the said period, the day from which such period is to
be computed shall be excluded.
CrPC Section 470. Exclusion of time in certain cases.
(1) In computing the period of limitation, the time during which any
person has been prosecuting with due diligence another prosecution,
whether in a Court of first instance or in a Court of appeal or
revision, against the offender, shall be excluded: Provided that no
such exclusion shall be made unless the prosecution relates to the
same facts’ and is prosecuted in good faith in a Court which from
defect of jurisdiction or other cause of a like nature, is unable to
entertain it.
(2) Where the institution of the prosecution in respect of an offence
has been stayed by an injunction or order, then, in computing the
period of limitation, the period of the continuance of the injunction
or order, the day on which it was issued or made, and the day on which
it was withdrawn, shall be excluded.
1. Ins. by Act 45 of 1978, s. 33 (w. e. f. 12- 12- 1978 ).
(3) Where notice of prosecution for an offence has been given, or
where, under any law for the time being in force, the previous consent
or sanction of the Government or any other authority is required for
the institution of any prosecution for an offence, then, in computing
the period of limitation, the period of such notice or, as the case
may be, the time required for obtaining such consent or sanction shall
be excluded. Explanation.- In computing the time required for
obtaining the consent or sanction of the Government or any other
authority, the date on which the application was made for obtaining
the consent or sanction and the date of receipt of the order of the
Government or other authority shall both be excluded.
(4) In computing the period of limitation, the time during which the
offender-
(a) has been absent from India or from any territory outside India
which is under the administration of the Central Government, or
(b) has avoided arrest by absconding or concealing himself, shall be
excluded.
CrPC Section 471. Exclusion of date on which Court is closed. Where the
period of limitation expires on a day when the Court is closed, the
Court may take cognizance on the day on which the Court reopens.
Explanation.- A Court shall be deemed to be closed on any day within the
meaning of this section, if, during its normal working hours, it remains
closed on that day.
CrPC Section 472. Continuing offence. In the case of a continuing offence, a
fresh period of limitation shall begin to run at every moment of the
time during which the offence continues.
CrPC Section 473. Extension of period of limitation in certain cases.
Notwithstanding anything contained in the foregoing provisions of this
Chapter, any Court may take cognizance of an offence after the expiry of
the period of limitation, if it is satisfied on the facts and in the
circumstances of the case that the delay has been properly explained or
that it is necessary so to do in the interests of justice.
CHAP MISCELLANEOUS. CHAPTER XXXVII MISCELLANEOUS
CrPC Section 474. Trials before High Courts. When an offence is tried by the
High Court otherwise than under section 407, it shall, in the trial of
the offence, observe the same procedure as a Court of Session would
observe if it were trying the case.
CrPC Section 475. Delivery to commanding officers of persons liable to be
tried by Court- martial.
(1) The Central Government may make rules consistent with this Code
and the Army Act, 1950 (46 of 1950 ), the Navy Act, 1957 (62 of 1957
), and the Air Force Act, 1950 (45 of 1950 ), and any other law,
relating to the Armed Forces of the Union, for the time being in
force, as to cases in which persons subject to military, naval or air
force law, or such other law, shall be tried by a Court to which this
Code applies or by a Court- martial; and when any person is brought
before a Magistrate and charged with an offence for which he is liable
to be tried either by a Court to which this Code applies or by a
Court- martial, such Magistrate shall have regard to such rules, and
shall in proper cases deliver him, together with a statement of the
offence of which he is accused, to the commanding officer of the unit
to which he belongs, or to the commanding officer of the nearest
military, naval or air force station, as the case may be, for the
purpose of being tried by a Court- martial. Explanation.- In this
section-
(a) “unit” includes a regiment, corps, ship, detachment, group,
battalion or company,
(b) “Court- martial” includes any tribunal with the powers similar
to those of a Court- martial constituted under the relevant law
applicable to the Armed Forces of the Union.
(2) Every Magistrate shall, on receiving a written application for
that purpose by the commanding officer of any unit or body of
soldiers, sailors or airmen stationed or employed at any such place,
use his utmost endeavours to apprehend and secure any person accused
of such offence.
(3) A High Court may, if it thinks fit, direct that a prisoner
detained in any jail situate within the State be brought before a
Court- martial for trial or to be examined touching any matter pending
before the Court- martial.
CrPC Section 476. Forms. Subject to the power conferred by article 227 of the
Constitution, the forms set forth in the Second Schedule, with such
variations as the
circumstances of each case require, may be used for the respective
purposes therein mentioned, and if used shall be sufficient.
CrPC Section 477. Power of High Court to make rules.
(1) Every High Court may, with the previous approval of the State
Government, make rules-
(a) as to the persons who may be permitted to act as petition-
writers in the Criminal Courts subordinate to it;
(b) regulating the issue of licences to such persons, the conduct of
business by them, and the scale of fees to be charged by them;
(c) providing a penalty for a contravention of any of the rules so
made and determining the authority by which such contravention may
be investigated and the penalties imposed;
(d) any other matter which is required to be, or may be, prescribed.
(2) All rules made under this section shall be published in the
Official Gazette.
CrPC Section 478. Power to alter functions allocated to Executive Magistrates
in certain cases. 1 If the Legislative Assembly of a State by
a resolution so permits, the State Government may, after consultation
with the High Court, by notification, direct that references in sections
108, 109, 110, 145 and 147 to an Executive Magistrate shall be construed
as references to a Judicial Magistrate of the first class.]
CrPC Section 479. Case in which Judge or Magistrate is personally interested.
No Judge or Magistrate shall, except with the permission of the Court to
which an appeal lies from his Court, try or commit for trial any case to
or in which he is a party, or personally interested, and no Judge or
Magistrate shall hear an appeal from any judgment or order passed or
made by himself. Explanation.- A Judge or Magistrate shall not be deemed
to be a party to, or personally interested in, any case by reason only
that he is concerned therein in a public capacity, or by reason only
that he has viewed the place in which an offence is alleged to have been
committed or any
1. Subs. by Act 45 of 1978, S. 34, for” State Legislature” (w. e. f.
18- 12- 1978 ). 2 Subs. by S. 34 ibid, for” requires” (w. e. f. 18.
12- 1978 ).
3. Subs. by Act 63 of 1980, s. 8 (w. e. f. 23- 09- 1980 ).
CrPC Section 480. Practising pleader not to sit as Magistrate in certain
Courts. No pleader who practises in the Court of any Magistrate shall
sit as a Magistrate in that Court or in any Court within the local
jurisdiction of that Court.
CrPC Section 481. Public servant concerned in sale not to purchase or bid for
property. A public servant having any duty to perform in connection with
the sale of any property under this Code shall not purchase or bid for
the property.
CrPC Section 482. Saving of inherent powers of High Court. Nothing in this
Code shall be deemed to limit or affect the inherent powers of the High
Court to make such orders as may be necessary to give effect to any
order under this Code, or to prevent abuse of the process of any Court
or otherwise to secure the ends of justice.
CrPC Section 483. Duty of High Court to exercise continuous superintendence
over Courts of Judicial Magistrates. Every High Court shall so exercise
its superintendence over the Courts of Judicial Magistrates subordinate
to it as to ensure that there is an expeditious and proper disposal of
cases by such Magistrates.
CrPC Section 484. Repeal and savings.
(1) The Code of Criminal Procedure, 1898 (5 of 1898 ), is hereby
repealed.
(2) Notwithstanding such repeal,-
(a) if, immediately before the date on which this Code comes into
force, there is any appeal, application, trial, inquiry or inves-
tigation pending, then, such appeal, application, trial, inquiry or
investigation shall be disposed of, continued, held or made, as the
case may be, in accordance with the provisions of the Code of
Criminal Procedure, 1898 (5 of 1898 ), as in force immediately
before such commencement, (hereinafter referred to as the Old Code),
as if this Code had not come into force: Provided that every inquiry
under Chapter XVIII of the Old Code, which is pending at the
commencement of this Code, shall be dealt with and disposed of in
accordance with the provisions of this Code;
(b) all notifications published, proclamations issued, powers
conferred, forms prescribed, local jurisdictions defined, sentences
passed and orders, rules and appointments, not being appointments as
Special Magistrates, made under the Old Code and which are in force
immediately before the commencement of this Code shall be deemed,
respectively, to have been published, issued, conferred, prescribed,
defined, passed or made under the corresponding provisions of this
Code;
(c) any sanction accorded or consent given under the Old Code in
pursuance of which no proceeding was commenced under that Code,
shall be deemed to have been accorded or given under the
corresponding provisions of this Code and proceedings may be
commenced under this Code in pursuance of such sanction or consent;
(d) the provisions of the Old Code shall continue to apply in
relation to every prosecution against a Ruler within the meaning to
article 363 of the Constitution.
(3) Where the period prescribed for an application or other proceeding
under the Old Code had expired on or before the commencement of this
Code, nothing in this Code shall be construed as enabling any such
application to be made or proceeding to be commenced under this Code
by reason only of the fact that a longer period therefor is prescribed
by this Code or provisions are made in this Code for the extension of
time.